Magazine Analog Science Fiction And Fact 2007 Issue 03 March (v1 0) [html]





Magazine - Analog Science Fiction And Fact - 2007 - Issue 03 - March (v1.0) [lit]













* * * *

ANALOG SCIENCE FICTION AND FACT

Vol. CXXVII No. 3, March 2007

Cover design by Victoria Green

Cover Art by George Krauter





SERIAL

QUEEN OF CANDESCE, part I of IV, Karl Schroeder



Novella

THE SMALL POND, C. Sanford Lowe & G. David Nordley



Novelette

COOL NEIGHBOR, Michael Shara & Jack McDevitt



Short Stories

TRUCKS, Amy Bechtel

MISQUOTING THE MOON, David Bartell



Science Fact

TOWARD A NOT-JUST-DIAMOND AGE, Stephen L. Gillett, Ph.D



Reader's Departments

THE EDITOR'S PAGE

IN TIMES TO COME

THE ALTERNATE VIEW, John G. Cramer

THE REFERENCE LIBRARY, Tom Easton

BRASS TACKS

UPCOMING EVENTS, Anthony Lewis

Stanley Schmidt Editor

Trevor Quachri Associate Editor





Click a Link for Easy Navigation




CONTENTS


EDITORIAL: NEW WRITERS by
Stanley Schmidt

QUEEN OF
CANDESCE: PART I OF IV by Karl Schroeder

SCIENCE FACT:
TOWARD A NOT-JUST-DIAMOND AGE by Stephen L. Gillett, Ph.D.

TRUCKS by Amy
Bechtel

MISQUOTING THE
MOON by David Bartell

THE ALTERNATE
VIEW: EXTRASOLAR PLANETS AND OCCULT ASTRONOMY by John G. Cramer


COOL NEIGHBOR by
Michael Shara and Jack McDevitt

IN TIMES TO COME


THE SMALL POND
by C. Sanford Lowe and G. David Nordley

THE REFERENCE
LIBRARY by Tom Easton

BRASS TACKS


UPCOMING EVENTS
BY Anthony Lewis

* * * *








EDITORIAL: NEW
WRITERS by Stanley Schmidt


Last summer a thread on the Analog
website Readers’ Forum revisited a frequently asked question:
What determines whether a story submission gets bought, and how can an
aspiring writer improve his or her chances of selling? Several of our
regular contributors joined in and did an admirable job of setting the
record straight for those participating. However, the number of our
readers who are interested in writing is much larger than the number
who frequent the Forum. Since the Forum comments repeat a number of
common and counterproductive misconceptions and speculations, I thought
it would be a good idea to respond to some of them here, too.


For example, the thread started
with a reader questioning the statement in our submission guidelines
(available on our website [www.analogsf.com] or by sending a request
with a self-addressed stamped business-size envelope) that “Analog
will consider material submitted by any writer, and consider it solely
on the basis of merit. We are definitely eager to find and develop new,
capable writers.” This reader did his own research by
counting stories in our 2005 issues and identifying those writers he
thought were new. His identifications were not always accurate, but his
qualitative observation that only a minority of stories were by new
authors is true. Unfortunately, he then concluded, “Seems
like Analog might be considering more than just the
merit of the stories they receive. Looks like you need to have some
publishing experience listed in your cover letter."


Which is, as several other
participants (both professional and otherwise) pointed out, very wrong.


The fact is that the author's
name, reputation, or publishing history has absolutely no
effect on our decision about whether to buy a story. Please
note that I speak here only for Analog; magazine
editors are quirky individuals just like everybody else, and different
ones can and do have different priorities. And book
publishing is a quite different kettle of fish. If a novel is published
in book form, the success of that book is riding on a single story. The
publisher will want to make sure it sells at least reasonably well, and
there is a good deal of evidence that many book purchases are made in
large part because readers liked previous books by a particular author.
So book publishers often do
seek out books by authors who have sold well in the recent past, and
sometimes won't even consider manuscripts by authors of recent books
that didn't make much money.


At magazines—in
particular, at this magazine—things are
very different. Each issue contains not one, but several stories and
other features, so there's not as much riding on any one of them. We
can be more willing to take a chance if we're not sure how readers will
react to an unusual story. As long as most readers like most of what we
publish, they'll allow us an occasional oddity that they don't like.
Most of them are intelligent and observant enough to realize that
individual tastes vary widely, so we can't expect any reader to love
everything we publish, or every reader to love anything.


The flip side, of course, is that
most readers have to like most
of what we publish, or we'll lose our audience. We can't afford to let
that happen, so we are very seriously determined to get the best
material we can, regardless of where or whom it comes from. So we
really do pick stories “solely on the basis of
merit.” “Merit,” of course, is in part
subjective, so what I really mean by the “best”
stories is “those stories I think most likely to please most
of our readers.” But those can come from anywhere. Quite
often (and this should surprise no one) they come from people who have
already written for us enough to have a good idea of what we're likely
to like, and how to create it. But they can, and sometimes do, come
from complete newcomers. By at least one measure, the most popular
story I've published in all my years of editing Analog
was a first submission straight out of the slush pile.


So don't names count for anything
at all? Well, sometimes, but probably not in the way you might imagine.
One person on the Forum asked, “Does Analog
surreptitiously rely on ‘big names’ to snag
purchases on magazine racks? ... Some names, at least, are listed on
the cover.” Oh, come on! There's nothing surreptitious about
listing names that are likely to catch a reader's eye on the newsstand;
of course we want to do that, and a well-known name is obviously more
likely to do it than a completely unfamiliar one. We don't list all
contributors on the cover (as does that poster, who edits an online
magazine) because (a) the familiar ones would stand out less from a
long list, and (b) many of our readers like the cover art and want the
picture relatively uncluttered. The space constraints and display
requirements for an e-zine and a print magazine on a newsstand are
entirely different.


But (and this is important) most
of our sales these days are through subscriptions, not newsstands, and
subscription renewals depend more than anything else on trust. We need
subscribers to feel confident that we will give them really good
reading material most of the time, and a “big name”
on the cover does not automatically assure that. One of the first
things I learned when I took this job is that even the biggest names
are not in top form all the time. Also, I can't buy
more than about 1% of what I get, no matter how much I'd like
to buy, because that's all the magazine has room for. So, just as I
have bought and featured stories from complete unknowns, I've also
rejected work by almost anybody you can think of.


Now: suppose I buy a substandard
or inappropriate story just so we can print a big name on the cover.
Maybe it does produce a little one-time blip in newsstand sales, but
the value of that will be more than offset by the loss of trust when
our subscribers read the story inside and feel cheated. We can't afford
to let that happen. So instead I buy the best stories I can, from
whoever offers them to me. If one of them happens to be from an author
with a highly recognizable name, yes, we'll put that on the cover (and
when I turn down a story from such an author, no one else needs to know
about it). But note carefully that the story is first bought on its own
merits, and only then do we consider using the author's name as part of
a marketing plan. The name plays no role in deciding whether to buy the
story.


We try to keep the magazine's
name one that readers will recognize and trust as a reliable source of
good stories, even to the point where I can give an unknown top billing
on the cover and newsstand readers will pick it up because they suspect
this must be a new writer of great promise. And yes, this has happened;
two cases that come to mind right off the top of my head are David R.
Palmer ("Emergence") and Geoffrey A. Landis ("Elemental").


Incidentally, I can think of one
small exception to my statement that the author's name has no effect on
my likelihood of buying a story: sometimes a good track record can make
it harder to sell a particular story. I once sent a
story back with a letter that began, “If I got this story
from somebody I'd never heard of, I'd be very excited. But I know Mike
Flynn can do better....” (And with that goad, he did.)


Let's look at another sadly
amusing myth from that website thread: “'Open to new
writers’ is just a marketing gimmick ... It's the oldest
trick in the publishing book. Hopefuls subscribe to the magazine
because they figure they'll want a copy when their stuff is published. Analog's
subscription base would be decimated if they told the truth about their
story selection process.” I have no idea what basis this
writer thinks he has for believing such fanciful
“facts,” but the truth about our story selection
process is what I'm telling now and always have. If we publish your
story, you don't need a subscription to get a copy—we'll
automatically give you a couple of copies, along
with actual payment in currency of the realm, plus the option of buying
as many additional copies as you may want at a substantial discount.
And while our subscriber base includes a good many writers who submit
stories, it includes a great many more readers who have no interest in
submitting.


Another attempt to bolster the
tired old rationalization that rejection or sale is determined by name:
one writer on the Forum said a story by a “name”
recently appeared in Analog with the same premise
as one of his that we'd rejected. I don't doubt it, and I was pleased
and impressed that the writer had the good grace not to accuse anyone
of plagiarism or even to name the other story or author with a similar
idea. Another of the first things I learned when I took this job is
that truly, completely new ideas are extremely rare. A premise does not
make a story; the story is what you build on the
premise, and evidently I liked one of these more than the other. Some
premises have served as the basis for several successful stories and
hundreds or even thousands of unsuccessful ones. Some years back I
published a list of 26 that I could count on seeing in my slush pile
several times every month, but once in a great
while a skilled writer (like Orson Scott Card) can still turn one of
those into a fresh and memorable story. But doing that takes skill, and
that takes both talent (the raw material from which skill can be made)
and practice.


Incidentally, I should probably
say a few words about the “slush pile,” since I've
mentioned it a couple of times and many people think it sounds
derogatory and make still more assumptions about what it means. In my
case, all manuscripts come to me in an unsorted pile and I read them
all—all 500 or so that I get in a month. If you do the math,
it will be obvious that I don't read them all the same way. If I'm
going to get through them all, I'll have to read most of them quite
rapidly, so I try to do that with all of them. But I can't speed-read
something that grabs my concentrated interest, so if that happens while
I'm working through that initial “slush pile,” I
put that story aside for reading later in a different, much slower, and
more analytical mode. Often, when I get a new pile of manuscripts, I'll
flip through it right away and pull out some that I know I'll have to
read in slow mode, because of past experience with that author. That
does not mean that stories in that “pro pile” are
automatically given preference come buying time; it just means that,
statistically, I know it's going to take longer to go through a foot of
those than a foot of “slush.” But if there's
something of pro quality in the slush pile, by somebody I've never
heard of, it will leap out at me and I'll pull it out for a closer read
later.


And that's the biggest kick I
ever get in this job: the thrill of discovery, of finding my attention
completely captivated by a really good writer the rest of the world
doesn't know about yet.


So you bet I want to find and
cultivate new writers—and I need to, because the ones I've
already cultivated tend to attract other editorial eyes and get book
contracts that keep them too busy to write much short fiction. But that
doesn't mean I'm interested in publishing writers just because
they're new. I'm no more interested in publishing new writers per
se than in publishing “big names” per
se. I'm interested in publishing stories
that make our readers sit up and take notice. At any given time, a
majority of those stories are likely to be by writers who already have
some experience—but some won't be. And some of those few
writers who catch my eye for the first time will be the “big
names” newcomers envy a few years later.


Remember, everybody
was a newcomer, an unknown, initially. Getting beyond that stage
requires a certain amount of talent, a lot of persistence, and (it must
be admitted) a certain amount of luck. I've spent quite a bit of time
trying to debunk the myth that newcomers don't have a chance; now I
must balance the picture with a few words about the countermyth that if
you have some talent and are persistent enough, eventually you will
succeed. Sadly, it isn't necessarily so. “Merit,”
as I mentioned earlier, is partly subjective; most editors are trying
to match reading material with sets of readers who will enjoy it, and
they have quite different audiences. You should never
assume that just because a story doesn't sell to one market, it's
“no good” in some objective sense. Get it out to
other markets and see if you can find one that wants to buy what you're
trying to sell. Maybe you will; maybe you won't. That depends on there
being a suitable market at the right time, with the right kind of
vacancy, not having bought something too similar too recently, etc.,
etc. My personal record is 21 years, for a story that I recognized as a
“Twilight Zone” story as soon as I wrote it, but
couldn't sell until somebody started a “Twilight
Zone” magazine. As an editor, I've read lots of perfectly
respectable stories that may never see print because their authors may
not live long enough to find the right home for them.


But some will, and it's enough
fun that if your interests run that way, I certainly encourage you to
give it your best shot. Don't give up your day job unless and until it
feels really right; don't let your whole future happiness and sense of
self-worth depend on commercial success as a writer; but tell the
stories you have to tell as well as you can tell them. Remember that
merit isn't all subjective; this trade, like any
other, depends on skills that you need to develop, and you may not be
able to tell whether you have them until you do. Learn the basics, like
submission protocol and grammar (you'd be astounded at how few people
use commas and hyphens in a way much better than random, and at how
much you can make yourself stand out by becoming one of them). Be aware
that the competition is tough—but if you
do well at it, it can offer you rewards (largely intangible, though
occasionally financial as well) that you'd be hard put to find anywhere
else.


And besides, I want to read those
stories.


Good luck!


Copyright (c) 2006 Stanley Schmidt


* * * *


Analog Science Fiction
and Fact (Astounding), Vol. CXXVII, No. 3, March 2007. ISSN
1059-2113, USPS 488-910, GST# 123054108. Published monthly except for
combined January/February and July/August double issues by Dell
Magazines, a division of Crosstown Publications. One-year subscription
for $43.90 in the U.S.A. and possessions, in all other countries,
$53.90 (GST included in Canada) payable in advance in U.S. funds. First
copy of new subscription will be mailed within eight weeks of receipt
of order. When reporting change of address allow 6 to 8 weeks and give
new address as well as the old address as it appears on the last label.
Periodical postage paid at Norwalk, CT and additional mailing offices.
Canadian postage paid at Montreal, Quebec. Canada Post International
Publications Mail. (c) 2006 by Dell Magazines, a division of Crosstown
Publications, all rights reserved. Dell is a trademark registered in
the U.S. Patent Office. Protection secured under the Universal
Copyright Convention. Reproduction or use of editorial or pictorial
content in any manner without express permission is prohibited. All
stories in this magazine are fiction. No actual persons are designated
by name or character. Any similarity is coincidental. All submissions
must be accompanied by stamped self-addressed envelope, the publisher
assumes no responsibility for unsolicited manuscripts or artwork.


* * * *


Peter Kanter: Publisher


Christine Begley: Associate
Publisher


Susan Kendrioski: Executive
Director, Art and Production


Stanley Schmidt: Editor


Trevor Quachri: Associate Editor


Mary Grant: Editorial Assistant


Victoria Green: Senior Art
Director


Irene Lee: Production
Artist/Graphic Designer


Carole Dixon: Senior Production
Manager


Evira Matos: Production Associate


Abigail Browning: Manager,
Subsidiary Rights and Marketing


Julia McEvoy: Manager,
Advertising Sales


Bruce W. Sherbow: VP, Sales and
Marketing


Sandy Marlowe: Circulation
Services


Advertising Representative Connie
Goon, Advertising Sales Coordinator, Tel: (212) 686-7188 N Fax:(212)
686-7414 (Display and Classified Advertising)


Editorial Correspondence Only:
analog@dellmagazines.com


Published since 1930


First issue of Astounding
January 1930 (c)


[Back to Table of Contents]









QUEEN OF
CANDESCE: PART I OF IV by Karl Schroeder


* * * *





Illustration by
George Krauter


* * * *


Being
literally thrown into an unfamiliar environment forces a person to
adapt—and familiar ways of doing that may not be enough.



Prologue


Garth Diamandis looked up, and
saw a woman in the sky.


The balcony swayed under him;
distant trees wavered in the hot afternoon air though there was no
breeze. A twist of little clouds pirouetted far overhead, just beneath
the glitter and darkness of the city that had exiled Gareth to this
place so many years ago. Well below the city, only a thousand feet up
at this point, a single human form had appeared out of the light.


She rotated up out of Garth's
view and he had to wait several minutes for her to come back around.
Then, there she was: gliding with supernatural grace over the tall,
ragged wall that rimmed the world at its nearer end. Behind her,
infinite air beckoned, forever out of reach of Garth and the others
like him. Ahead of the silent woman, a likely tumble into quickly
moving trees, broken limbs and death. If she wasn't dead already.


Someone tried to escape,
he thought—an act that always ended in gunshots or bloody
thrashing beneath a swarm of piranhawks. This one must have been shot
cleanly by the day watch for she was spiraling across the sky alone,
not attended by a retinue of blood droplets. And now the spin-gale was
teasing the fringes of her outlandish garment, slowing her; bringing
her down.


Garth frowned, for a moment
forgetting the aches and pains that bedeviled him all day and all
night. The hovering woman's clothes had been too bright and fluttered
too easily to be made of the traditional leather and metal of Spyre.


As the world turned the woman
receded into the distance, frustrating Garth's attempt to see more. The
ground under his perch was rotating up and away along with the whole
cylindrical world; the black-haired woman was not moving with it but
rather sailing in majestically from one of the world's open ends. But
Spyre made its own winds as it turned, and those winds would pull her
to its surface before she had a chance to drift out the other side.


She would have sped up by that
time, but not enough to match Spyre's rotation. Garth well knew what
happened when someone began clipping the treetops and towers at several
hundred miles per hour. He'd be finding pieces of her for weeks.


The ground undulated again.
Frantic horns began echoing in the distance—an urgent
conversation between the inner surface of Spyre and the city above.


Watching the woman had been an
idle pastime, since it looked as though she was going to come down
along the rail line. People with more firepower and muscle than Garth
owned that; they would see her in a few moments and bring her down. Her
valuable possessions and clothes would not be his.


But the horns were insistent.
Something was wrong with the very fabric of Spyre, an oscillation
building. He could see it in the far distance now: the land heaved
minutely up and down. The slow ripple was making its way in his
direction; he'd better get off this parapet.


The archway opening onto the
balcony had empty air behind it and a twenty-foot drop to tumbled
stones. Garth hopped over the rail without hesitation, counting as he
fell. “One pilot, two pilot, three—” He
landed among upthrusts of stabbing weed and the cloud-like brambles
that had taken over this ancient mansion. Three seconds? Well, gravity
hadn't changed, at least not noticeably.


His muscles creaked as he stood
up, but climbing and jumping were part of his daily constitutional, a
grim routine aimed at convincing himself he was still a man.


He stalked over the crackling
grit that painted a tiled dance floor. Railway ties were laid callously
across the fine pallasite stones; the line cleaved the former Nation of
Arbath like a whip-mark. Garth stepped onto the track daringly and
stared down it. The great family of Arbath had not reached an
accommodation with the preservationists and had been displaced or
killed, he couldn't remember which. Rubble, ruins, and new walls sided
the tracks; at one spot an abandoned sniper tower loomed above the
strip. It swayed now uneasily.


The tracks converged in
perspective but also rose with the land itself, a long graceful curve
that became vertical if he followed it far enough. He didn't look that
far, but focused on a scramble of activity taking place about a mile
distant.


The Preservation Society had
planted one of their oil-soaked sidings there like an obscene graffito.
Some of the preservationists were pouring alcohol into the tanks of a
big turbine engine that squatted on the tracks like an idol to
industrialism. Others had started a tug and were shunting in cars
loaded with iron plating and rubble. They were responding to the codes
brayed out by the distant horns.


They were so busy doing all this
that none had noticed what was happening overhead.


"You're crazy, Garth.”
He hopped from foot to foot, twisting his hands together. When he was
younger he wouldn't have hesitated. There was a time when he'd lived
for escapades like this. Cursing his own cowardice, Garth lurched into
a half run down the tracks—in the direction of the
preservationist camp.


He had to prove himself more and
more often these days. Garth still sported the black cap and long
sideburns that rakes had worn in his day, but he was acutely aware that
the day had come and gone. His long leather coat was brindled with
cracks and dappled with stains. Though he still wore the twin holsters
that had once held the most expensive and stylish dueling pistols
available in Spyre, nowadays he just carried odd objects in them. His
breath ratcheted in his chest and if his head didn't hurt, his legs
did, or his hands. Pain followed him everywhere; it had made
crow's-feet where once he'd outlined his eyes in black to show the
ladies his long lashes.


The preservationist's engine
started up. It was coming his way so Garth prudently left the track and
hunkered down beneath some bushes to let it pass. He was in disputed
land, so no one would accost him here, but he might be casually shot
from a window of the train and no one would care. While he waited he
watched the dot of the slowly falling woman, trying to verify his
initial guess at her trajectory.


Garth made it the rest of the way
to the preservationist camp without attracting attention. Pandemonium
still reigned inside the camp, with shaven-headed men in stiff leather
coats crawling like ants over a second, rust-softened engine, under the
curses of a supervisor. The first train was miles up the curve of the
world now, and if Garth bothered to look down the length of Spyre, he
was sure he would see many other trains on the move as well. But that
wasn't his interest.


Pieces of the world fell off all
the time. It wasn't his problem.


He crept between two teetering
stacks of railway ties until he was next to a pile of catch-nets the
preservationists had dumped here. Using a stick he'd picked up along
the way, he snagged one of the nets and dragged it into the shadows.
Under full gravity it would have weighed several hundred pounds; as it
was, he staggered under the weight as he carried it to a nearby line of
trees.


She was going by again, lower now
and fast in her long spiral. The woman's clothes were tearing in the
headwind, and her dark hair bannered behind her. When Garth saw that
her exposed skin was bright red he stopped in surprise, then redoubled
his efforts to reach the nearest vertical cable.


The interior of Spyre was spoked
by thousands of these cables; some rose at low angles to reattach
themselves to the skin of the world just a few miles away. Some shot
straight up to touch down on the opposite side of the cylinder. All
were under tremendous tension and every now and then one snapped; then
the world ran like a bell for an hour or two and shifted, and more
pieces fell off of it.


Aside from keeping the world
together, the cables served numerous purposes. Some carried elevators.
The one Garth approached had smaller lines draped and coiled around its
frayed black surface—some old, rusted, and disused pulley
system. The main cable was anchored to a corroded metal cone that
jutted out of the earth. He clipped two corners of the roll of netting
to the old pulley. Then he jogged away from the tracks, unreeling the
net behind him.


It took far too long to connect a
third corner of the huge net to a corroded flagpole. Sweating and
suffering palpitations, he ran back to the flagpole one more time. As
he did she came by again.


She was a bullet. In fact, it was
the land that was speeding by below her and pulling the air with it. If
she'd been alive earlier she might be dead now; he doubted whether
anyone could breathe in such a gale.


As soon as she shot past, Garth
began hauling on the pulleys. The net lurched into the air a foot at a
time. Too slow! He cursed and redoubled his effort, expecting to hear
shouts from the preservationist camp at any moment.


With agonizing slowness, a
triangle of netting rose. One end was anchored to the flagpole; two
more were on their way up the cable. Had he judged her trajectory
right? It didn't matter; this was the only attachment point for
hundreds of yards, and by now she was too low. Air resistance was
yanking her down, and in moments she would be tumbled to pieces on the
ground.


Here she came. Garth wiped sweat
out of his eyes and pulled with bloody hands. At that moment the shriek
of a steam whistle sounded from the preservationist camp. The rusted
engine was on the move.


The mysterious woman arrowed in
just above the highest trees. Garth thought for sure she was going to
miss his net. Then, just as the rusted engine sailed by on the
tracks—he caught snapshot glimpses of surprised
preservationist faces and open mouths—she hit the net and
yanked it off the cable.


A twirling screw hit Garth in the
nose and he sat down. Sparks shot from screaming brakes on the tracks,
and the black tangling form of the falling woman passed between the
Y-uprights of a jagged tree, the trailing net catching branches and
snapping them as she bounced with astonishing gentleness into a bed of
weeds.


Garth was there in seconds,
cutting through the netting with his knife. Her clothes marked her as a
foreigner, so her ransom potential might be low. He probably couldn't
even get much for her clothes; cloth like that had no business being
worn in Spyre. Oh well; maybe she had some adornments that might fetch
enough to buy him food for a few weeks.


Just in case, he put a hand on
her neck—and felt a pulse. Garth cursed in astonishment.
Jubilantly he slashed away the rest of the strands and pulled her out
as a warning shot cracked through the air.


Unable to resist, he teased back
the wave of black hair that fell across her face. The woman was fairly
young—in her twenties—and had fine, sharp features
with well-defined black eyebrows and full lips. The symmetry of her
face was broken only by a star-shaped scar on her jaw. Her skin would
have been quite fair were it not deeply sunburnt.


She only weighed twenty pounds or
so. It was easy to sling her over his shoulder and run for the deep
bush that marked the boundary of the disputed lands.


He pushed his way through the
branches and onto private land. The preservationists pulled up short,
cursing, just shy of the bushes. Garth Diamandis laughed as he ran; and
for a precious few minutes, he felt like he was twenty years old again.


* * * *


1


A low-beamed ceiling swam into
focus. Venera Fanning frowned at it, then winced as pain shot through
her jaw. She was definitely alive, she decided ruefully.


She was—but was Chaison
Fanning also among the living, or was Venera now a widow? That was it,
she had been trying to get back to her husband, Chaison Fanning. Trying
to get home—


Sitting up proved impossible. The
slightest motion sent waves of pain through her; she felt like she'd
been skinned. She moaned involuntarily.


"You're awake?” The
thickly accented words had the crackle of age to them. She turned her
head gingerly and made out a dim form moving to sit next to her. She
was lying on a bed—probably—and he was on a stool
or something. She blinked, trying to take in more of the long, low room.


"Don't try to move,”
said the old man. “You've got severe sunburn and sunstroke,
too. Plus a few cuts and bruises. I've been wetting down the sheets to
give you some relief. Gave you water, too. Don't know what else to do."


"Th-thanks.” Then she
looked down at herself. “Where are my clothes?"


His face cracked in a smile, and
for a second he looked much younger. He had slab-like features, with
prominent cheekbones and piercing gray eyes. Eyes like that could send
chills through you, and from his confident grin he seemed to know it.
But as he shifted in the firelight, she saw that lines of care and
disappointment had cut away much of his handsomeness.


"Your clothes are
here,” he said, patting a chair or table nearby.
“Don't worry, I've done nothing to you—not out of
virtue, mind, I'm not a big fan of virtue, mine or anyone else's. No,
you can thank arthritis, old wounds, and age for your
safety.” He grinned again. “I'm Garth Diamandis.
And you are a foreigner."


Venera sighed listlessly.
“Probably. What does that mean around here?"


Diamandis leaned back, crossing
his arms. “Much, or nothing, depending."


"And here is ... ?"


"Spyre,” he said.


"Spyre...” She thought
she should remember that name. But Venera was already falling asleep.
She let herself do it; after all, it was so cool here...


When she awoke again it was to
find herself propped half upright in a chair. Her forehead, upper body,
and arms were draped with moist sheets. Blankets swaddled her below
that.


Venera was facing a leaded-glass
window. Outside, green foliage made a sunlit screen. She heard birds.
That suggested the kind of garden you only got in the bigger
towns—a gravity-bound garden where trees grew short and
squat, and soil stayed in one place. Such things were
rare—and that, in turn, implied wealth.


But this room ... As she turned
her head her hopes faded. This was a hovel, for all that it too seemed
built for gravity. The floor was the relentless iron of a town
foundation, though surprisingly she could feel no vibration from
engines or slipstream vanes through her feet. The silence was uncanny,
in fact. The chamber itself was oddly cantilevered, as though hollowed
out of the foundations of some much larger structure. Boxes, chests,
and empty birdcages were jammed or piled everywhere, a few narrow paths
worn between them. The only clear area was the spot where her
overstuffed armchair sat. She located the bed to her left, some tables,
and a fireplace that looked like it had been clumsily dug into the wall
by the window. There were several tables here and the clutter had
infected them as well; they were covered with framed pictures.


Venera leaned forward, catching
up the sheet at her throat. A sizzle of pain went through her arms and
shoulders, and she extended her left arm, snarling. She was sunburned a
deep brick red, which was already starting to peel. How long had she
been here?


The pictures. Gingerly, she
reached out to turn one in the light. It was of a young lady holding a
pair of collapsible wrist-fins. She wore a strange, stiff-looking black
bodice, and her backdrop was indistinct but might have been clouds.


All the portraits were of women,
some two dozen by her estimation. Some were young, some older; all the
ladies seemed well-off from their various elaborate hairdos. Their
clothes were outlandish, though, made of sweeping chrome and leather,
clearly heavy and doubtless uncomfortable. There was, she realized, a
complete absence of cloth in these photos.


"Ah, you're awake!”
Diamandis shuffled his way through the towering stacks of junk. He was
holding a limp bird by the neck; now he waved it cheerfully.
“Lunch!"


"I demand to know where I
am.” She started to stand and found herself propelled nearly
to the ceiling. Gravity was very low here. Recovering with a wince, she
coiled the damp sheet around her for modesty. It didn't help; Diamandis
frankly admired her form anyway, and probably would have stared even if
she'd been sheathed in plate armor. It seemed to be his way, and there
was, strangely, nothing offensive about it.


"You are a guest of the
Principality of Spyre,” said Diamandis. He sat down at a low
table and began plucking the bird. “But I regret to have to
inform you that you've landed on the wrong part of our illustrious
nation. This is Greater Spyre, where I've lived now for, oh ...
twenty-odd years."


She held up the picture she had
been looking at. “You were a busy man, I see."


He looked over and laughed in
delight. “Very! And why not? The world is full of wonders,
and I wanted to meet them all."


Venera touched the stone wall and
now felt a faint thrum, but very slight. “You say this is a
town? An old one ... and you've turned gravity way down.”
Then she turned to look at Diamandis. “What did you mean,
‘regret to inform me'? What's wrong with this Greater Spyre?"


He looked over at her, and now he
seemed very old. “Come. If you can walk, I'll show you your
new home."


Venera bit back a sharp retort.
Instead, she sullenly followed him through the stacks. “My
temporary residence, you mean,” she said to the cracked
leather back of his coat. “I am making my way back to the
court at Slipstream. If ransom is required, you will be paid handsomely
for my safe return...” He laughed, somewhat sadly.


"Ah, but that it were possible to
do that,” he murmured. He exited up a low flight of steps
into bright light. She followed, feeling the old scar on her jaw
starting to throb.


The roofless square building had
been built of stone and steel I-beams, perhaps centuries ago. Now
devoid of top and floors, it had become a kind of open box, thirty feet
on a side. Wild plants grew in profusion throughout the rubble-strewn
interior. The hole leading to Diamandis's home was in one corner of the
place; there was no other way in or out as far as she could see.


Venera stared at the grass. She'd
never seen wild plants under gravity before. Every square foot was
accounted for in the rotating ring-shaped structures she called towns.
They were seldom more than a mile in diameter, after all, often built
of mere rope and planking. There was no other way to feel gravity than
to visit a town.


She scanned the sky past the
stone walls. In some ways it looked right: the endless vistas of Virga
were blocked by some sort of structure. But the perspective seemed all
wrong.


"Come.” Diamandis was
gesturing to her from a nearly invisible set of steps that ran up one
wall. She scowled, but followed him up to a level area just below the
top of the wall. If she stood on tiptoe, she could look over. So she
did.


Venera had never known one could
feel so small. Spyre was a rotating habitat, like those she had grown
up in. But that was all she could have said to connect it to the worlds
she had known. Diamandis's little tower sat among forlorn trees and
scrub-grass in an empty plain that stretched to forest a mile or more
in each direction. In any sane world, this much land under gravity
would have been crammed with buildings; those empty plazas and
tumbled-down villas should have been awash with humanity.


Past the trees, the landscape
became a maze of walls, towers, open fields, and sharp-edged forests.
And it went on and on to a dizzying, impossible distance. Diamandis's
tower was one tiny mote on the inside surface of a cylinder that must
be ten or twelve miles in diameter and half again as long.


Sunlight angled in from somewhere
behind her; Venera turned quickly, needing the reassurance of something
familiar. Beyond the open ends of the great cylinder, the reassuring
cloudscapes of the normal world turned slowly; she had not left all
sense and reason behind. But the scale of this town-wheel was
impossible for any engineering she knew. The energy needed to keep it
turning in the unstable airs of Virga would beggar any normal nation.
Yet the place looked ancient, as evidenced by the many overgrown ruins
and furzes of wild forest. In fact, she could see gaps in the surface
here and there through which she could glimpse distant flickers of
cloud and sky.


"Are those holes?” she
asked, pointing at a nearby crater. Leaves, twigs, and grit fogged the
air above it, and all the topsoil for yards around had been stripped
away revealing a stained metal skin that must underlie everything here.


Garth scowled as if she'd
committed some indiscretion by pointing out the hole.
“Yes,” he said grudgingly. “Spyre is
ancient and decaying, and it's under an awful strain. Tears like that
open up all the time. It's everyone's nightmare that one day, such a
rip might not stop. If the world should ever come to an end, it will
start with a tear like that one."


Faintly alarmed, Venera looked
around at the many other tears that dotted the landscape. Garth
laughed. “Don't worry, if it's serious the patch gangs will
be here in a day or two to fix it—dodging bullets from the
local gentry all the while. They were out doing just that when I picked
you up."


Venera looked straight up.
“I suppose if this is greater Spyre” she said,
pointing, “then that is Lesser Spyre?"


The empty space that the cylinder
rotated around was filled with conventional town-wheels. Uncoupled from
the larger structure, these rings spun grandly in midair, miles above
her. Some were ‘geared’ towns whose rims touched,
while others turned in solitary majesty. A puff of smaller buildings
surrounded the towns.


The wheels weren't entirely
disconnected from Greater Spyre. Venera saw cables standing up at
various angles every mile or so throughout the giant cylinder. Some
angled across the world to anchor in the ground again far up Spyre's
curve. Some went straight past the axis and down to an opposite point;
if you climbed one of these lines, you could get to the city that hung
like an iron cloud half a dozen miles above.


She didn't see any elevator
traffic on the nearest cables. Most were tethered inside the maze-like
grounds of the estates that dotted the land. Would anyone have a right
to use those cables but the owners?


When Diamandis didn't reply,
Venera glanced over at him. He was gazing up at the distant towns, his
expression shifting between empty adoration and anger. He seemed lost
in memory.


Then he blinked and looked down
at her. “Lesser Spyre, yes. My home, from which I am exiled
for life. Always visible, never to be achieved again.” He
shook his head. “Unlucky you to have landed here, lady."


"My name,” she said,
“is Venera Fanning.” She looked out again. The
nearer end of the great cylinder began to curve upward less than a mile
away. It rose for a mile or two, then ended in open air. “I
don't understand,” she said. “What's to prevent
me—or you—from leaving? Just step off that rim
yonder and you'll be in free flight in the skies of Virga. You could go
anywhere."


Diamandis looked where she was
pointing. Now his smile was condescending. “Ejected at four
hundred miles per hour, Lady Fanning, you'll be unconscious in seconds
for lack of breath. Before you slow enough to awake you'll either
suffocate or be eaten alive by the piranhawks. Or be shot by the
sentries. Or be eviscerated by the razor wire clouds, or hit a mine...


"No, it was a miracle that you
drifted unconscious through all of that, to land here. A
once-in-a-million feat.


"Now that you're among us, you
will never leave again."


* * * *


Diamandis's words might have
alarmed Venera had she not recently survived a number of impossible
situations—not only that, he was manifestly wrong about the
threat the piranhawks represented; after all, hadn't she sailed
blithely through them all? These things in mind, she followed him down
to his hovel, where he began to prepare a meal.


The bird was pathetically small;
they would each get a couple of mouthfuls out of it if they were lucky.
“I'm grateful for your help,” Venera said as she
lowered herself painfully back into the armchair. “But you
obviously don't have very much. What do you get out of helping me?"


"The warmth of your
gratitude,” said Diamandis. In the shadow of the stone
fireplace, it was impossible to make out his expression.


Venera chose to laugh.
“Is that all? What if I'd been a man?"


"I'd have left you without a
second thought."


"I see.” She reached
over to her piled clothes and rummaged through them. “As I
suspected. I've not come through unscathed, have I?” The
jewelry that had filled her flight jacket's inner pockets was gone. She
looked under the table and immediately spotted something: it looked
like a metal door in the floor, with a rope loop as its handle. Her
feet had been resting on it earlier.


"No, it's not down
there,” said Diamandis with a smile.


Venera shrugged. The two most
important objects in her possession were still inside her jacket. She
could feel the spent bullet through the lining. As to the
other—Venera slipped her hand in to touch the scuffed white
cylinder that she and her husband had fought their way across half the
world to collect. It didn't look like it was worth anything, so
Diamandis had apparently ignored it. Venera left it where it was and
straightened to find Diamandis watching her.


"Consider those trinkets to be
payment for my rescuing you,” he said. “I can live
for years on what you had in your pockets."


"So could I,” she said
levelly. “In fact, I was counting on using those valuables to
barter my way home, if I had to."


"I've left you a pair of earrings
and a bracelet,” he said, pointing. There they were, sitting
on the table next to her toeless deck shoes. “The rest is
hidden, so don't bother looking."


Seething but too tired to fight,
Venera leaned back, carefully draping the moist sheet over herself.
“If I felt better, old man, I'd whip you for your impudence."


He laughed out loud.
“Spoken like a true aristocrat! I knew you were a woman of
quality by the softness of your hands. So what were you doing floating
alone in the skies of Virga? Was your ship beset by pirates? Or did you
fall overboard?"


She grimaced. “Either
one makes a good story. Take your pick. Oh, don't look at me like that,
I'll tell you, but first you have to tell me where
we are. What is Spyre? How could such a place exist? From the heat
outside I'd say we're still near the sun of suns. Is this place one of
the principalities of Candesce?"


Diamandis shrugged. He bent over
his dinner pot for a minute, then straightened and said,
“Spyre's the whole world to those of us who live here. I'm
told there's no other place like it in all of Virga. We were here at
the founding of the world, and most people think we'll be here at its
end. But I've also heard that once, there were dozens of Spyres, and
that all the rest crumbled and spun apart over the ages ... So I
believe we live in a mortal world. Like me, Spyre is showing its age."


He brought two plates. Venera was
impressed: he'd added some cooked roots and a handful of boiled grains
and made a passable meal of the bird. She was ravenous and dug in; he
watched in amusement.


"As to what Spyre
is...” He thought for a moment. “In the
cold-blooded language of the engineers, you could say that we live on
an open-ended rotating cylinder made of metal and miraculously strong
cables. About six miles from here there's a giant engine that powers
the electric jets. It is the same kind of engine that runs the suns.
Once, we had hundreds of jets to keep us spinning, and Spyre's outer
skin was smooth and didn't catch the wind. Gravity was stronger then.
The jets are failing, one by one, and wind resistance pulls at the skin
like the fingers of a demon. The old aristocrats refuse to see the
decay that surrounds them, even when pieces of Spyre fall away and the
whole world becomes unbalanced in its turning. When that happens, the
preservationist society's rail engines start up and they haul as many
tons as needed around the circle of the world to reestablish the
balance.


"The nobles fought a civil war
against the creation of the preservation society. That was a hundred
years ago, but some of them are still fighting. The rest have been
hunkered down on their estates for five centuries now, slowly breeding
heritable insanities in the quiet of their shuttered parlors. They're
so isolated that they hardly speak the same language anymore. They'll
shoot anyone who crosses their land, yet they continue to live, because
they can export objects and creatures that can only be made here."


Venera frowned at him.
“You must not be one of them. You're making sense as far as I
can tell."


"Me? I'm from the
city.” He pointed upward. “Up there, we still trade
with the rest of the principalities. We have to, we've got no
agriculture of our own. But the hereditary nobles own us because they
control the industries down here."


The bitterness in his voice was
plain. “So, Garth Diamandis, if you're a city person, what
are you doing living in a hole in the ground in Greater
Spyre?” She said it lightly, though she was aware the
question must cause him more pain.


He did look away before smiling
ruefully at her. “I made the cardinal mistake of all gigolos:
I cultivated popularity among women only. I bedded one too many
princesses, you see. I was kindly not killed nor castrated for it, but
I was sent here."


"But I don't
understand,” she said. “Why is it impossible to
leave? You said something about defenses ... but why are they there?"


Diamandis guffawed.
“Spyre is a treasure! At its height, this place was the equal
of any nation in Virga, with gravity for all and wonders you couldn't
get anywhere else. Why, we had horses! Have you heard of horses? And
dogs and cats. You understand? We had here all the plants and animals
that were brought from Earth at the very beginning of the world.
Animals that were never altered to live in weightlessness. Even now, a
breeding pair of house cats costs a king's ransom. An orange is worth
its weight in platinum. We had to defend ourselves and prevent our
treasures being stolen. So for centuries now Spyre has been ringed with
razors and bombs to prevent attack—and to prevent anyone
smuggling anything out. And believe me, when all else has descended to
madness and decadence, that is the one policy that will remain in
place.” He hung his head.


"But surely one person, traveling
alone—"


"Could carry a cargo of swallowed
seeds. Or a dormant infant animal in a capsule sewn under the skin.
Both have been tried. Oh, travel is still possible, for nobles of
Lesser Spyre and their attendants, but there are body scans and
examinations, interrogations, and quarantines. And anyone who's
recently been on Greater Spyre comes under even more suspicion."


"I ... see.” Venera
decided not to believe him. She would be more cheerful that way. She
did her best to shrug off the black mood his words had inspired and
focused on her meal.


They ate in silence for a while,
then he said, “And you? Pirates or a fall overboard?"


"Both and neither,”
said Venera. How much should she tell? There was no question that lying
would be necessary, but one must always strike the right balance. The
best lies were built of pieces of truth woven together in the right
way. Also, it would do her no good to deny her status or origins; after
all, if the paranoid rulers of Spyre needed money, then Venera Fanning
herself could fetch a good price. Her husband would buy her back, or
reduce this strange wheel to metal flinders. She had only to get word
back to him.


"I was a princess of the kingdom
of Hale,” she told Diamandis. “I married at a young
age, he is Chaison Fanning, the admiral of the migratory nation of
Slipstream. Our countries lie far from here—hundreds or
thousands of miles, I don't know—far from the light of
Candesce. We have our own suns, which light a few hundred miles of open
air that we farm. Our civilizations are bounded by darkness, unlike you
who bask in the permanent glory of the sun of suns..."


Some audiences would need
more—not all people knew that the whole vast world of Virga
was artificial, a balloon thousands of miles in diameter that hung
alone in the cosmos. Lacking any gravity save that made by its own
inner air, Virga was a weightless environment whose extent could easily
seem infinite to those who lived within it. Heat and light were
provided not by any outside star but by artificial suns, of which
Candesce was the oldest and brightest.


Even the ignorant knew it was a
manmade sun that warmed their faces and lit the crops they grew on
millions of slowly tumbling clods of earth. But the world itself? One
glance up from your own drudge-work might encompass vast,
cloud-wreathed spheres of water, miles in extent, their surfaces scaled
with mirror-bright ripples; thunderheads the size of nations, which
made no rain because rain required gravity but rather condensed balls
of water the size of houses, of cities, then threw them at you; and a
glance down would reveal depths of air painted every delicate shade by
the absorption and attenuation of the light of a dozen distant suns.
How could such a place have an end? How could it have been made by
people?


Venera had seen the outer skin of
the world, watched icebergs calve off its cold black surface. She had
visited the region of machine-life and incandescent heat that was
Candesce. The world was an artifact, and fragile. In her coat pocket
was something that could destroy it all, if you but knew what it was
and how to use it.


There were things she could tell
no one.


A thing she could tell was that
her adopted home of Slipstream had been attacked by a neighboring
power, Mavery. Missiles had flashed out of the night, blossoming like
red flowers on the inner surface of the town-wheels of Rush. The city
had been shocked into action, a punitive expedition mounted with her
husband leading it.


She explained to Diamandis that
Mavery's assault had been a feint. He listened in mesmerized silence as
she described the brittle dystopia known as Falcon Formation, another
neighbor of Slipstream. Falcon had conspired with Mavery to draw
Slipstream's navy away from Rush. Once the capital was undefended,
Falcon Formation was to move in and crush it.


The true story was that Venera's
own spy network had alerted them to this plot. Chaison and Venera
Fanning had taken seven ships from the fleet and left on a secret
mission to find a weapon powerful enough to stop Falcon. The story she
told Diamandis now was that her flagship and its escort were pursued by
Falcon raiders, chased right out of the lit air of civilization into
the darkness of permanent winter that permeated most of Virga.


That had been a month ago.


After that, more things she could
tell: a battle with pirates, being captured by same; escape, and more
adventures near the skin of the world. She told Diamandis that they had
sailed toward Candesce in search of help for their beleaguered country.
She did not tell him that their goal was not any of the ancient
principalities that ringed the sun. They were after a pirate's
treasure, in particular the one seemingly insignificant piece of it
that now rested in Venera's jacket. They had come seeking the key to
Candesce itself.


In Venera's version, the
Slipstream expedition had been met with hostility and chased into the
furnace-like regions around Candesce. Her ships had been set upon and
half of them destroyed by treacherous marauders of the nation of
Gehellen.


In fact, she and her husband had
orchestrated the theft of the pirate's treasure from under the noses of
the Gehellens and then fled with it—he, back to Slipstream
and her, into the sun of suns. There she had temporarily disabled one
of Candesce's systems. While it was down, Chaison Fanning was to lead a
surprise attack on the fleet of Falcon Formation.


Slipstream's little expeditionary
force was no match for the might of Falcon—normally. For one
night, the tables should have been turned.


Venera had no idea whether the
whole gambit had been successful or not. She would not tell
Diamandis—would not have told anyone—that she
feared her husband was dead, the force destroyed, and that Falcon
cruisers ringed the Pilot's palace at Rush.


"I was lost overboard when the
Gehellens attacked,” she said. “Like much of the
crew. We were close to the sun of suns and as dawn came, we burned ...
I had foot-fins, and at first I was able to fly away, but I lost one
fin, then the other. I don't remember anything after that."


Diamandis nodded. “You
drifted here. Luckily, the winds were in your favor. Had you circulated
back into Candesce you'd have been incinerated."


That much, at least, was true.
Venera suppressed a shudder and sank back in her chair. She was
infinitely weary all of a sudden. “I need to sleep."


"By all means. Here, we'll get
you to the bed.” He touched her arm and she hissed in pain.
Diamandis stepped back, concern eloquent on his face.


"There are
treatments—creams, salves ... I'm going to go out and see
what I can get for you. For now you have to rest. You've been through a
lot."


Venera was not about to argue.
She eased herself down on the bed, and despite being awash in burning
soreness, fell asleep before hearing him leave.


* * * *


2


Near dawn, the lands of Greater
Spyre were lit only by the glitter of city lights high overhead. In the
faint glow, the ancient towers and forests seemed as insubstantial as
clouds. Garth paused in the black absence beneath a willow tree. He had
run the last hundred yards, and it was all he could do to keep his feet.


Silhouettes bobbed against the
gray outline of a tower. Whoever they were, they were still following
him. It was unprecedented: he had snuck through the hedgerows and
fields of six hereditary barons, each holding no more than a square
mile or so of territory but as fanatical about their boundaries as any
empire. Garth knew how to get past their guards and dogs, he did it all
the time. Apparently, these men did also.


It must have been somebody at the
Goodwill Free Clinic. They'd waited until he was gone and then signaled
someone. If that was so, Garth would no longer be able to count on the
neutrality of the Kingdom of Hallimel—all six acres of it.


He moved on cautiously, padding
quietly onto a closely cropped lawn dotted with ridiculously heroic
statues. It was quiet as a tomb here; and certainly nobody had any
business being out. He allowed himself a little righteous indignation
at whoever it was that was following him. They were trespassers; they
should be shot.


It would be most satisfying to
raise the alarm and see what happened—a cascade of
genetically crazed hounds from the doorway of yon manor house, perhaps,
or spotlights and a sniper on the roof. The trouble was, Garth himself
was a known and tolerated ghost in only a few of these places, and
certainly not the one he was passing through now. So he remained
discreet.


A high stone wall loomed over the
garden of statues. Its bricks were crumbling and made an easy ladder
for Garth in the low gravity. As he rolled over the top he heard voices
behind him—someone exclaiming something. He must have been
visible against the sky.


He landed in brambles. From here
on, the country was wild. This was disputed territory, owned by
now-extinct families, its provenance tied up in generations-old court
cases that would probably drag on until the end of the world. Most of
the disputed lands were due to the railway allotments created by the
preservationists; they had needed clearances that ran completely around
the world, and they had gotten them, for a price of blood. This section
of land had been abandoned for other reasons, though what they were
Garth didn't know. He didn't care, either, as long as the square tower
he called home was left in peace.


His intention was to reach it so
that he could warn the lady Fanning that they had company—but
halfway across the open grassland he heard thuds behind him as half a
dozen bodies hit the ground on his side of the wall. They were catching
up, and quickly.


He flattened and rolled to one
side. Grass swished as dark figures passed by, only feet away. Garth
cursed under his breath, wishing there were some way to warn Venera
Fanning that six heavily-armed men were about to pay her a visit.


* * * *


Venera heard them coming. The
darkness wasn't total—Diamandis had left a candle
burning—so she wasn't completely disoriented when she awoke
to voices saying, “Circle around the other side,”
and “this must be his bolt-hole.” A flush of
adrenalin brought her completely awake as she heard scratching and
scuffling just outside the hovel's door.


She rolled out of bed, heedless
of the pain, and ran to the table where she snatched up a knife.
“Down here!” someone shouted.


Where were her clothes? Her
jacket lay draped across a chair, and on the table were the bracelet
and earrings Diamandis had left her. She cast about for her other
things, but Diamandis had apparently moved them. There they were, on
another table—next to the opening door.


Venera's first inclination would
normally be to draw herself up to her full five foot seven and stare
these men down when they entered. They were servants, after all, even
if they were armed. If she could speak and make eye contact, Venera was
completely confident in her ability to control members of the lower
classes.


At least, she used to be. Recent
events—particularly her unwelcome dalliance with captain
Dentius of the winter pirates—had made her more cautious. In
addition, she was sore all over and had a pounding headache.


So Venera snatched up the candle,
her jacket, and the jewelry and knelt under the table. The rope ring
scraped her raw skin as she yanked on it; after a few tugs the
mysterious hatch lifted. She felt down with her foot, making contact
with a metal step. As men blundered into Diamandis's home, she billowed
the damp sheet behind her, with luck to drape over the hatch and hide
it.


The candle guttered and nearly
went out. Venera cupped a hand around it and cautiously felt for the
next step. She counted seven before finding herself standing in an icy
draft on metal flooring. A constant low roar made it hard to hear what
was going on above.


This small chamber was oval,
wider at the ceiling than at the floor, and ringed with windows. All
the panes were flush with the wall, but a couple vibrated at a high
speed, making a low braying sound. They seemed to be sucking air out of
the room; it was the walls that soaked cold into the place.


Diamandis evidently used the room
for storage because there were boxes piled everywhere. Venera was able
to make her way among them to the far end, where a metal chair was
bolted to the floor. The windows here were impressive:
floor-to-ceiling, made of some resilient material she had never seen
before.


The candlelight seemed to show a
dense weave of leaves on the other side of the glass.


She was going to freeze unless
she found something to wear. Venera ransacked the boxes, alternately
cursing and puffing out her cheeks in wonder at the strange horde of
broken clocks, worn-out shoes, rusted hinges, frayed quills, moldy
sewing kits, left socks, and buckles. One crate contained nothing but
the dust jackets of books, all their pages having been systematically
ripped out. It was a small library's worth of intriguing but useless
titles. Another was full of decaying military apparel, including
holsters and scabbards, all of it bearing the same coat of arms.


At least the activity was keeping
her warm, she reasoned. The faint clomp of boots above continued, so
she moved on to a new stack of boxes. This time she was rewarded when
she found it packed with clothing. After dumping most of that onto the
floor she discovered a pair of stiff leather pants, too small for
Diamandis but sufficient for her. Getting into them wasn't easy,
though—the material scoured her already-raw skin so that it
hurt to move. The leather cut out the wind, however.


Once she had done up the flight
jacket, Venera sat down in the metal chair to wait for whatever
happened next. This was much harder; it wasn't in Venera's nature to
remain still. Staying still made you think, and thinking led to
feeling, which was seldom good.


She drew her knees up and wrapped
her arms around her shins. It came to her that if they took away
Diamandis and she couldn't get out of here, she would die and no one
would ever know what had happened to her. Few would care, either, and
some would rejoice. Venera knew she wasn't well liked.


More stomping up above. She
shivered. How far away was her home in Slipstream? Three thousand
miles? Four? An ocean of air separated her from her husband, and in
that ocean gyred the nations of enemies, rising, lowering, drifting
with the unpredictable airs of Virga. Awaiting her out there were the
freezing abysses of winter, full of feathered sharks and pirates.
Before the sun of suns had roasted her into unconsciousness, she had
been determined and sure of her own ability to cross those daunting
distances alone. She had leaped from the cargo nets of Hayden Griffin's
jet and soared for a time like a solitary eagle in the skies of Virga.
But the sun had caught up to her and now she was here, trapped and in
pain hardly any distance from where she'd started.


She climbed off the chair,
fighting a wave of nausea. Better to surrender herself to whoever
waited above than die here alone, she thought—and she almost
ran up the steps and surrendered. It was a pulse of pain through her
jaw that stopped her. Venera drew her fingertips across the scar that
adorned her chin, and then she backed away from the steps.


Her heel caught the edge of a box
she'd dropped, and she stumbled back against the icy windows. Cursing,
she straightened up, but as she did she noticed a gleam of light
welling up through the glass. She put her cheek to it—which
dampened the pain a bit—and squinted.


The windows were covered with a
long-leafed form of ivy. The stuff was vibrating with uncanny
speed—so quickly that the leaves’ edges were
blurred. Diamandis had said that Spyre rotated very fast; was she
looking into the air outside?


Of course. This oval chamber
stuck out of the bottom of the world. It was an aerodynamic blister on
the outside of the rotating cylinder, and that chair might have once
fronted the controls of a heavy machine gun or artillery piece mounted
outside. It still might. Frowning, Venera clambered over the mounds of
junk back to the metal seat and examined it.


There was indeed a set of handles
and levers below the chair, and more between the windows. She didn't
touch them but peered out through the glass there, as light continued
to well through the close-set leaves.


Candesce was waking up. The sun
of suns lit a zone hundreds of miles in diameter here at the center of
Virga. Past the trembling leaves, Venera could see a carousel of mauve
and peach-painted cloud tumbling past with disorienting speed; but she
could also see more.


The oval blister was mounted into
a ceiling of riveted metal, as she'd expected. That ceiling was the
hull of Spyre. Covering this surface in long runnels and triangles was
the strange ivy. Its leaves were like knives, sharp and long, and they
all aligned in the flow of the wind. Venera had heard of something
called “speed ivy"; maybe that's what this was.


The ivy seemed to prefer growing
on things that projected into the airstream. Sheets of metal skin were
missing here and there—in fact, there were outright holes
everywhere—and the ivy clustered on the leading and trailing
edges of these, smoothing the airflow in those places. Maybe that was
what it was for.


This view of Spyre was not
reassuring. The place was showing its age—dangling sheets of
titanium whirred in the wind and huge I-beams thrust down into the
dawn-tinted air, whole sagging acres just waiting to peel off the
bottom of the world. It was amazing that the place kept itself together.


Next to the blister, a rusted
machine gun was mounted on the surface. It faced stoically into the
wind, and didn't move when Venera tried the controls in front of the
chair.


Well. All this was interesting,
but not too interesting. She headed back to the stairs, but the light
coming through the ranked leaves was considerable now, and she could
see more of the blister's interior. So the little passage that opened
out behind the stairs was now obvious.


Venera gnawed her lip and rolled
her eyes to look at the closed hatch overhead. One hand was on her hip;
even here, with no audience, she posed as she thought.


She needed shoes, but she'd
recovered the important items, the key to Candesce and her bullet.
Venera was quite aware that she was obsessed with that bullet, and who
wouldn't be, she usually reasoned, if one like it had flown a thousand
miles or more across Virga to randomly spike through a window and into
their jaw? This particular projectile had been fired in some distant
war or hunting party and missed its target; since there was no gravity
nor solid ground to stop it, the thing had kept going and going until
it met her. From that encounter Venera had gained a scar, regular
crippling headaches, and something to blame for her own meanness. She'd
kept the bullet and over time had become consumed with the need to know
where it had come from. It was not, she would admit, a healthy need.


She patted the jacket, feeling
the heavy shape inside it; then she slipped past the steps and into the
narrow passage, and left Diamandis and his invaders to their own little
drama.


* * * *


It was more of a crawlway than a
corridor. Venera walked bent over, gasping as the old leather chafed
her hips and knees. Why didn't these people dress sensibly? Lit only by
intermittent portholes, the passage wormed its way a hundred yards or
so before ending in a round metal door. It was all so obviously
abandoned—stinking of rust and inorganic decay—that
Venera didn't bother knocking on the door, but turned the little wheel
in the middle of it and pushed.


She stepped down into a mirror
image of the blister she had just left. She half expected to find
another maze of boxes on the other side of the steps, with another
junk-framed hovel and another Garth Diamandis waiting for her above.
But no, the blister was empty save for a half foot of stagnant water
and a truly revolting gallery of fungus and cobwebs. The windows were
hazed over but provided enough light for a tiny forest that was trying
to conquer the metal chair at the far end. The stairs were jammed with
soil and roots.


The prospect of dipping her bare
feet into that horrid water nearly made her turn back. What stopped her
was a tiny chink of light visible in the midst of the soil plug. After
wading cautiously and with revulsion through the stinking stuff, she
reached up and pulled at the roots. Gradually, in little showers of
dirt, worms, and fibrous tubers, she widened a hole big enough for her
to shimmy through. A minute later she dragged herself up out and into
the middle of a grassy field.


Too bad about Diamandis, but with
luck he was still off on his errand and the interlopers wouldn't be
there when he got back. Anyway, he'd been more than compensated for
taking care of her; that had been a pilot's ransom of gems and faience
he'd taken from her jacket. She half hoped those loud burglars found
the stuff—it would serve him right.


Venera's own destination was
clear. Spyre being a cylinder, it had ends, and one of those was only
half a mile away. There the artificial land curved up hundreds of feet
in a gesture that would close off the end if continued. The curve ended
in a broad gallery above and beyond which the winds of Virga shuddered.
She had only to make it up that slope and hop off the edge and Venera
would be in free flight again. She would take her chances with the
piranhawks and snipers. She doubted any of them could hit one small
woman leaving Spyre at four hundred miles per hour.


In this case, wearing leather
would serve her well.


Between Venera and the edge of
the world lay a chessboard of estates. Each had its tottering stone
walls, high hedges, towers, and moats to defend its two or three acres
from the ravages of greedy neighbors. Constrained by space and what
Venera sensed was deep paranoia, the estates had evolved into similar
designs—the larger ones walled, with groves surrounding open
fields and a jumble of towers, annexes, and greenhouses at the center;
small ones often just a single square building that took up the entire
demesne. These edifices were utterly windowless on the outside, but
higher up the curve of the world she could see that most contained
courtyards crammed with trees, fountains, and statuary.


The walls of some estates were
separated by no more than twenty feet of no-man's land. She ran through
these weed-choked alleys, dodging young trees, past iron-faced pillbox
gates that faced one another across the minor space like boxy suits of
armor. The footing was treacherous, and she suspected traps.


Venera was used to higher gravity
than Spyre's. Tired and sore though she was, it was easy for her to
leap ten feet to the top of a stone wall and run its length before
dropping to the grass beyond. Her feet barely felt brick, root, and
stone as she wove in and out of the trees, sprinted around open ponds
under windows that were just beginning to gleam yellow in the light of
Candesce. As she ran she marveled that such distances could exist; she
had never run so far in a straight line and could hardly believe it
possible.


The birds were the only ones
making sound, but as she ran Venera began to notice a deep rushing roar
that came from ahead of her. It was the sound of the edge of the world,
and with it there came the beginnings of a breeze.


She heard surprised shouts as she
crossed one fanatically perfect lawn, bare feet kissing wet grass.
Glancing to the side, Venera caught a glimpse of a small party of men
and women sitting on curlicued iron chairs in the morning light. They
were sipping tea or something similar.


They stood up—stiff
ornamented garments ratcheting into their standing configurations like
portcullises slamming down—and the three men howled
“intruders!” as if Venera were an entire army of
pirates. After a moment, sirens sounded inside the looming stone pile
behind them.


"Oh, come on!”
She was panting with exhaustion now, her head swimming. But there were
only two more estates to pass, and then she would be on the slope to
the world's edge. With a burst of speed she raced by more lighting
windows and opening doors, noting abstractly that the considerable mob
of soldiers who had spilled out of the first place's doors had stopped
at the edge of their property as if they'd slammed into an invisible
fence.


So she only had to outrace the
alarm in each particular property. It could be a game, and Venera
actually would have enjoyed the chase if she hadn't been on the verge
of fainting from exhaustion and residual heatstroke. If only she had
the breath to taunt the idiots on the way by!


Gunshots cut the air as she
passed the last estate. This was one of the big single-building
affairs, all gray asteroidal stone drizzled with veins of bright metal.
Its only external windows were murder slits that started fifteen feet
up, and she saw no doors. Empty upward-curving fields beckoned on the
other side of the edifice; she staggered onto what Diamandis had called
‘disputed territory’ and paused to catch her
breath. “Ha! Safe!"


The wind was now a harsh constant
moan, flickering past her in gusts. It spun in little permanent
tornadoes over gaps and holes in Spyre's skin. There were more and more
such holes as the slope rose to the edge. The edge itself was ragged, a
crenellation of collapsed galleries, up-thrusting spars and flapping
plates that added to the din.


She heard something else, too. A
regular creaking sound seemed to be coming from overhead. Venera looked
up.


Six wooden platforms had been
lowered over the top of the stone cube and were being winched down.
Each was crowded with men in tall steel helmets and outlandish spiked
armor. They clutched pikes and rifles with barrels longer than they
were tall. Several were pointing at her excitedly.


Venera swore and took off up the
rubble-strewn slope. The wind was at her back, and it became stronger
the closer she got to the edge. Several gusts lifted her off her feet.
Venera noticed that the metal skin of Spyre was completely exposed in
the final yards leading up to the edge. Only fair-sized rocks inhabited
the area behind it. As she watched, a stone the size of her foot rolled
up the metal and spun off into the air. A few more yards and the wind
would take her, too.


Her foot sank into the slope and
Venera fell in ridiculous slow-motion. As she pried herself upright
again she saw that the metal plate bent by her foot was vibrating madly
in the square hole it had made. Then with a loud pop it disappeared and
suddenly a hurricane was howling into the bright aperture it had left.


Venera was sucked down and slid
forward until she was right over the hole. She reached out and braced
her hands on either side while the air screamed past her. It was trying
to escape Spyre with even more passion than hers. For a few seconds she
could only stare down and see what faced her if she made it to the edge
and jumped.


Many long flagpole-like beams
thrust out below the edge of the world. They trailed wire nets into the
furious wind; anyone caught on those nets would suffocate before they
could be pulled up. Far beneath the nets, where scudding clouds spun
past, Venera glimpsed thousands of black specks and grayish veins in
the air. Mines? More razor wire? Diamandis had not been lying, after
all.


"Damn! Shit!” She tried
to scream more curses—every one she could think
of—but the air was being pulled out of her lungs. She was
about to faint into the hole and die.


Strong hands took her by the arms
and legs and hauled her back. Venera was hoisted onto someone's back
and unceremoniously toted back down the slope. With every jolting step
escape, and home, and Chaison receded past the frame of her grasping
fingers.


* * * *


3


Although he was her favorite
uncle, Venera never saw much of Prince Albard. He was a mysterious
figure on the periphery of the court, sweeping into Hale in his yacht
to regale her with tales of strange cities and the outlandish women
he'd met there (always sighing when he talked of them). His face was
split down the center by a saber scar, putting his lips into a
permanent twist that made it look like he was smirking. Unlike most of
the people who encountered him, Venera knew that he was
smirking—laughing inside at all the pointless desperation and
petty recrimination of life. In that regard he was the polar opposite
of her father, a man with a mind focused by a single lens of suspicion;
maybe that was why she clung to Albard's knees when he did appear, and
treasured the odd-shaped dolls and toys he brought.


They recognized each other, this
vagabond prince in his motley and the pouting princess in clothes she
systematically tattered as soon as she was in them. So maybe it was
natural that when the time came, it was in her bedroom that Albard
barricaded himself.


He only noticed her after he had
dragged her wardrobe across the door and piled some chairs and tables
around it. “Damn, girl, what are you doing here?"


Venera had cocked her head and
squinted at him. “This is my room."


"I know it's your room, dammit.
Shouldn't you be at lessons?"


"I bit the tutor.”
Banished and bored, she had (not out of anger but a more scientific
impulse) been beheading some of her dolls when Albard swept in. Venera
had assumed that he was there to talk to her and had politely waited,
limp headless body in one hand, while he proceeded to move all the
furniture. So he wasn't there to see her? What, then, was this all
about?


"Oh, never mind,” he
said irritably, “just stay out of sight. This could get ugly."


Now she could hear shouting
outside, sounds of people running. “What did you
do?” she asked.


He was leaning back against the
pile of furniture as though trying to propel it out the room.
“I bit someone, too,” he said. “Or,
rather, I was about to, and they found out."


Venera came and sat down on the
fuchsia carpet near him. “My father, right?"


His eyebrows rose comically.
“How did you guess?"


Venera thought about this for a
while. Then she said, “Does that mean that everybody who
makes Father mad has to come to this room?"


Albard laughed. “Niece,
if that were true, the whole damn kingdom would be in here with us."


"Oh.” She was slightly
reassured.


"Give it up, Albard!”
someone shouted from outside. It sounded like her father. There was
some sort of mumbling discussion, then: “Is, uh ... is Venera
in there with you?"


"No!” The prince put a
finger to his lips and knelt next to her. “The one thing I
absolutely will not do,” he said gently, “is use
you as a bargaining chip. If you want to leave, I will tear down this
barricade and let you go."


"What will they do to you?"


"Put me in chains, take me away
... then it all depends on your father's mood. There's a black cloud
behind his eyes lately, have you seen it?” She nodded
vigorously. “It's getting bigger and bigger, that cloud, and
I think it's starting to crowd out everything else. That worries me."


"I know what you mean."


"I daresay you do.”
There followed a long interval during which Albard negotiated with the
people on the other side of the furniture. Venera retreated to the
window, but she was far from bored now. At last Albard blew out his
cheeks and turned to her.


"Things are not going
well,” he said. “Do you have a pen and some writing
material?” She pointed to the desk that perched on top of the
barricade. “Ah. Much obliged."


He clambered up and retrieved a
pen and some paper. Then, frowning, he dropped the paper. He went to
his knees and began hunting around for something, while Venera watched
closely. He came up with one of her dolls, a favorite that had a
porcelain head and cloth body.


"Do you mind if I borrow this for
a minute?” he asked her. She shrugged.


Albard rubbed the doll's face
against the stone floor for a while, while crashing sounds started from
the hallway. The barricade shook. Holding the doll up critically, the
prince grunted in satisfaction. Then he hunched over and began
delicately pressing the pen against its face.


He was standing in the center of
the room with his hands behind his back when the barricade finally
fell. A dozen solders came in, and they marched him out; he only had
time to look back and wink at Venera before he was gone.


After they'd taken him away, some
members of the secret police ransacked her room. (That it looked
substantially the same when they left as before Albard had arrived was
a testament to her own habits.) They seized everything that could write
or be written on, even prying the plaster off the wall where she'd
scribbled on it. Venera herself was frisked several times, and then
they swirled out, all clinking metal and bandoliers, leaving her
sitting in the exact spot where he had been standing.


Neither she, nor anyone she would
later meet, ever saw Albard again.


Eventually, she moved over to the
window and picked up a particular doll. Its tunic was ripped where the
secret policemen had cut it open looking for hidden notes. Venera held
it up to the window and frowned.


So that was what he'd been doing.
Albard had rubbed its eyebrows off against the stone. Then, in
meticulous tiny lines and curls, he had repainted them. From a distance
of more than a few inches they seemed normal. Up close, though, she
could see what they were made of:


Letters.


* * * *


The nation of Liris curled around
its interior courtyard as though doubled up in pain. Every window
stared down at that courtyard. Every balcony overhung it. The bottom of
this well would be in permanent shadow if not for the giant mirrors
mounted on the roof, which were aimed at Candesce.


Venera could plainly see that the
courtyard was the focus of everything—but she couldn't see
what was down there. For the first two days of her stay she was
shuttled from small room to small room, all of them lined up in a short
hallway painted institution green. After a brief interview in each
chamber she was taken back to a drab waiting room, where she sat and
ate and slept fitfully on the benches. She was startled awake every
morning by a single gunshot sounding somewhere nearby. Morning
executions?


It seemed unlikely; she was the
sole inhabitant of this little prison. Prison it clearly was. She had
to fill out forms just to use the one washroom, a cold cube with wooden
stalls defaced by centuries of carven graffiti. Its high, grated
windows gave her a view of the upper stories of the inner courtyard.
They hinted at freedom.


"B-b-back to waking?”
Venera sat up warily on the third morning and tried to smile at her
jailor.


He was tall, athletically
muscled, and possessed the sort of chiseled good looks one saw in
actors, career diplomats, or con artists. As dapper as could be
expected for a man dressed in iron and creaking leather, he might have
melted any lady's heart—provided she never looked in his eyes
or heard him speak. Either of those maneuvers would have revealed the
awful truth about Moss: his mind was damaged somehow. He seemed more
marionette than man and, sadly, appeared to be painfully aware of his
deficit.


Just as he had yesterday, Moss
carried a stack of forms in one hand, bearing it as though it were a
silver platter. Venera sighed when she saw this. “How long is
it going to take to process me into your prison?” she asked
as he clattered to a stop in front of her.


"P-p-prison?” Moss
gaped at her. Carefully, as though they were gold, he placed the papers
on the peeling bench. His metal clothing gnashed quietly as he
straightened up. “You're n-not in p-p-prison, my lady."


"Then what is this
place?” She gestured around at the sound-deadening plaster
walls, the smoke-stained light sconces and battered benches.
“Why am I here? When do I get my things back?”
They'd gone through her jacket and taken its
contents—jewelry, key, and bullet. She wasn't sure which loss
worried her most.


Moss's face never changed
expression as he spoke, but his eyes radiated some sort of desperate
plea. They always did, even if he was staring at the wall. Those eyes
seemed eloquent, but Venera was beginning to think that nothing about
Moss's looks or demeanor meant anything about his inner state. Now he
said, in his intensely flat way, “This is the im-immigration
department of the g-g-government of Liris. You were brought here to
t-t-take your citizenship-ip exams."


"Citizenship?” But now
it all made sense—the forms, the sense of being processed,
and the succession of minor officials who'd taken up hours of her time
over the past days. They had grilled her mercilessly, but not about how
or why she had come here, or about what her plans or allegiances might
be. They didn't even want to know about her peeling sunburns. No,
they'd wanted to know the medical histories of her extended family,
whether there was madness in her line (a question that had made her
laugh), and what was the incidence of criminality among her relatives.


"Well, my father stole a country
once,” she had answered. She had of course asked them to let
her go, in perhaps a dozen different ways. Her assumption was that she
would be ransomed or otherwise used as a bargaining chip. With this in
mind, she had sat anxiously for hours, wondering about her value to
this or that state or person. It had never occurred to Venera that she
might be adopted by Liris as one of its own.


Now as she realized what was
going on, Venera had one of the strangest moments of her life. She
felt, for just a second, relief at the prospect of spending the rest of
her life hidden away here, like a jewel in a safe. She shook herself,
and the moment passed. Disturbed, she stood and turned away from Moss.


"B-b-but the news is
good,” said Moss, who looked like he was begging for death as
he said it. “D-don't fret. You have p-p-passed all the
t-t-tests so far. J-just one set of forms to g-go."


Venera gnawed at her knuckle,
each bite sending little pulses of pain up her jaw. “What if
I don't want to be a citizen of Liris?"


Moss proceeded to laugh, and
Venera swore to herself she would do anything to avoid seeing that
again. “F-Fill these out,” he said.
“A-and you're done."


It wasn't eagerness to become a
citizen of a nation the size of a garden that made her sign the papers.
Venera just wanted to get her things back—and get out of the
waiting room. What she'd felt a moment ago was just a craving for
anonymity, she told herself. Citizenship of any nation meant nothing to
her, except as a sign of lowly status. Her father was hardly a citizen
of Hale, after all; he was Hale, and other people
were citizens of him. Venera had grown up believing she, too, was above
such categories.


"Come,” was all Moss
said when she was finished. He led her out into the hallway, and at its
end, he unlocked the great metal door with its wire-mesh window. Before
pushing the portal open, he picked up an open-topped box and held it
out to her.


Inside were the necklace and
earrings he'd confiscated from her jacket when she arrived. Rolling
next to them was her bullet.


The key to Candesce was not there.


Venera frowned but decided not to
press the matter just now. Moss gestured with one hand and she edged
past him into her new country.


Shafts of dusty sunlight
silhouetted tall stone pillars. Their arched capitals were muted in
shadow, but the polished floors gleamed like mirrors. Save for a wall
where the edge of the courtyard should be, the whole bottom floor of
the great cubic building seemed open. Filling the space were dozens and
dozens of cubicles, desks, worktables, and stalls.


Indeed, it seemed as if all the
roles of a midsized town were duplicated here—tailor over
here, doctor there, carpenters on this side, bricklayers on
that—but all gathered in one room. Bolts of cloth were
stacked with bags of cement. Drying racks and looms had been folded up
under the ceiling to make way for chopping blocks and flour-covered
counters. And working in determined silence throughout this shadow-cut
space was a small army of silent, focused people.


Each was isolated at some chair
or desk, and Venera had the startled impression that these work
stations had grown up and around some of the people, like shells
secreted around water creatures. It must have taken years for that man
there to build the small ziggurat of green bottles that reared above
his desk; nearby a woman had buried herself in a miniature jungle of
ferns. Mirrors on stands and hanging from strings cunningly directed
every stray beam of light within ten feet at her green fronds. Each
position had its eruption of individuality or downright eccentricity,
but their limits were strictly kept; nobody's keepsakes and oddities
spilled beyond an invisible line about five feet in radius.


Moss led her to an outer wall,
where he opened a dim chamber that reminded her of Diamandis's warren.
Here were crates and boxes full of what looked like
armor—except she knew it for what it was. “You are
required to wear four hundred and fifty p-p-pounds of mass during the
day,” said Moss. “That will offset our r-reduced
g-gravity and maintain the health of your bones.” He stood
back, arms crossed, while Venera rooted through the mess looking for
something suitable.


It seemed that Spyre's tailors
were an unimaginative lot. The room contained an abundance of blouses,
dresses and skirts, pants and jackets, but all were done in intricately
tooled and hinged metal. Only undergarments—those directly in
contact with the skin—were made of suppler materials, mostly
leather, though to her relief she did find some cloth. Venera tried on
a vest made of verdigrised copper scales, added a skirt made of
overlapping iron plates and weighed herself. Barely one hundred pounds.
She went back and found greaves and wrist bracers, a platinum torque,
and a steel jacket with tails. Better, but still too light. Moss waited
patiently while she layered herself like a battleship. Finally when she
topped the scales at one hundred pounds weight—five hundred
pounds mass—he grunted in satisfaction. “B-but you
need a h-h-hat,” he said.


"What?” She glared at
him. He had something like a belaying pin tied to his head; it wobbled
when he moved. “Isn't all this humiliating enough?"


"We m-must put p-p-pressure on
the s-spine. For l-long-term health."


"Oh, all right.” She
hunted through a cache of ridiculous alternatives, ranging from
flowerpots with chinstraps to a glass fish bowl, currently empty but
encrusted with rime. Finally she settled on the least offensive piece,
a chrome helmet with earflaps and crow's wings mounted behind the
temples.


With all of this on her, Venera's
feet made a satisfactory smack when they hit the ground. She could feel
the weight and it was indeed nearly normal, but spread all over her
surface instead of internally. And she quickly discovered that it took
a good hard push to start walking and that turning and stopping were
not operations to be taken lightly. She had a quarter-ton of inertia
now. After walking into several walls and doorjambs, she started to get
the hang of it.


"N-now,” said Moss in
evident satisfaction, “you are f-fit to see the B-B-Botanist."


"The what?” He threaded
his way among the pillars without further comment. Venera nodded and
smiled at the men and women who were putting down their work to openly
stare as she passed. She tried to unobtrusively discern what they were
working on, but the light here was too uneven. Shadow and glare
thwarted her.


Sunlight reflecting off the
polished floor washed out whatever was ahead. Venera glanced back one
more time before entering the lit area. Blackness and curving arches
framed a dozen white ovals—faces—all turned toward
her. On those faces she read every emotion: amazement, curiosity,
anger, fear. None avoided her gaze. They goggled at her as though
they'd never seen a stranger before.


Maybe they hadn't. Venera's scalp
prickled, but Moss was waving her ahead. Blinking, she stepped from the
dark gallery into the courtyard of Liris.


For a moment it seemed as if
she'd entered one of the paintings on the ceiling of her father's
chapel. This one came complete with scented pink clouds. She reached
out a hand to touch one of these and heard the sharp click of a weapon
being cocked. Venera froze.


"It would be very unwise of you
to complete that gesture,” drawled a voice from somewhere
ahead. Slowly, Venera retracted her hand. As her eyes adjusted to the
brightness, she saw the barrels of three antique-looking rifles aimed
her way. Grim men in iron held them.


The soldiers made a shocking
contrast to their setting. The entire courtyard was full of trees, all
of one type, all in full flower. The scent and color of the millions of
blossoms was overwhelming. It took Venera a moment to notice that the
branches of many of the trees were hung with jewels, and gold rings
encircled some of the trunks. It took her another moment to realize
that a throne sat in the sole bare patch at the center of the
courtyard. The woman lounging there was watching her with obvious
amusement.


Her gown was of gold, silver, and
platinum; on her head was a crown touched with gems of all shades that
flashed in the concentrated light of Candesce. She appeared to be in
early middle age, but was still beautiful; a cascade of hair dyed the
same color as the blossoms wound down her shoulders.


"You seem reluctant to step into
sunlight,” she said with evident amusement. “I can
see why.” She tapped her own cheeks, eyes twinkling.


Venera eyed the soldiers, thought
about it, and walked over. Since this was evidently a throne room of
sorts, she bowed deeply. “Your ... majesty?"


"Oh. Oh no.” The woman
chuckled. “I am no queen.” She waved a hand
dismissively. “We are a meritocracy in Liris. You'll learn.
My name is Margit, and I am Liris's resident botanist."


"Botanist...” Venera
straightened and looked around at the trees. “This is your
crop."


"Please.” The lady
Margit frowned. “We don't refer to the treasure of Liris in
such prosaic terms. These beings are Liris. They
sustain us, they give us meaning. They are our soul."


"Pardon, m'lady,” said
Venera with another bow. “But ... what exactly are
they?"


"Of course.” Margit's
eyes grew wide. “You would never have seen one before. You
are so lucky to gaze upon them for the first time when they are in
flower. These, Citizen Fanning, are cherry trees."


Why was that word so familiar?
There'd been a ball once, and her beloved uncle had approached her with
something in his hand ... a treat.


"What are cherries?”
she asked as guilelessly as she could.


"An indulgence of the
powerful,” said Margit with a smile. “A delicacy so
rare that it evidently never made it to your father's court."


"About that,” said
Venera. “The court, I mean. My family is fantastically rich.
Why make me a ... citizen of this place, when you could just ransom me
back? You could get a boatload of treasure for me."


Margit scoffed. “If you
were the princess of a true nation then perhaps we would consider it.
But you're not even from the principalities! By your own admission
during the interviews, you come from the windswept wastes of Outer
Virga. There's nothing there, and I find it hard to believe your people
could own anything that would be of interest to us."


Venera narrowed her eyes.
“Not even a fleet of battle cruisers capable of reducing this
place to kindling from twenty miles away?"


Not only Margit laughed at this;
the soldiers did as well. “Nobody threatens Spyre, young
lady. We're impregnable.” Margit said this so smugly that
Venera swore she would find a way to throw her words back at her.


Margit snapped her fingers, and
Moss stepped forward. “Acquaint her with her new
duties,” said the botanist.


Moss stared at her, slack jawed.
“W-what are those?"


"She knows the languages and
cultures of other places. She'll be an interpreter for the trade
delegation. Go introduce her.” Margit turned away, lifting
her chin with her eyes closed so that a beam of sunlight flooded her
face.


* * * *


On her seventeenth birthday,
Venera snuck out of the palace for the first time, acquired the means
to blackmail her father, killed her first person, and met the man she
was destined to marry. She would later tell people that “it
all just sort of happened."


The capital of Hale was a
collection of six town-wheels—spinning rings, each two
thousand feet in diameter—surrounded by an ever-shifting
cloud of weightless buildings and smaller rings. The main sound in the
city was the rumbling of jet engines, as various rings and large
municipal structures struggled to keep their spin and to avoid
colliding. The scent of kerosene hung in the air; underlying it were
other industrial and biological odors, just as under the rumbling of
the engines you could hear shouts, horns, and the laughter of dolphins.


Venera had grown up watching the
city life from afar. When she traveled between the town-wheels it was
usually in a closed taxi. Sometimes one or another of the nobility
hosted weightless balls; then she and the other ingenues donned
fabulous wings that were powered by stirrups, and flew intricate dances
in the warm evening air. But that flight always took place within
careful limits. Nobody strayed.


She was of marriageable age
now—and had recently come to realize that in Hale,
marriageable also meant murderable. Venera had three sisters and had
once had three brothers. Now she had two of those, and the once-close
girls of the family were starting to actively plot against one another.
With the boys, it was all about succession; with the girls, marriage.


Someone had used a marvelous word
at a dinner party just a few days before: leverage.
Leverage was what she needed, Venera had decided. And so her thoughts
had turned to old family tragedies, and the mysteries that had consumed
her as a girl.


Today she was dressed in the
brown blouse and pantaloons of a servant-girl, and the wings on her
back were not butterfly orange or feathered pink, but beige canvas. Her
hair was tied down with a drab cloth, and she soared the air of the
city barefoot. In her waist bag she carried some money, a pistol, and a
porcelain-headed doll. She knew where she was going.


The bad neighborhoods started
remarkably close to the palace. This fact might have had something to
do with the royal habit of simply dumping waste off the palace-wheel
without regard to trajectory or velocity. The upper classes couldn't be
entirely blamed for the stench that wafted at Venera as she flapped
toward her destination, however. She wasn't disgusted; on the contrary,
the smell and the sound of arguing, shouting people made her heart
pound with excitement. Since she was little she'd sat for hours with
her eye glued to a telescope, watching these citizens and this
neighborhood roll by as the palace turned past it. She knew the
place—she had simply never been here.


What Venera approached looked
like nothing so much as an explosion frozen in time. Even the smoke (of
which there was plenty) was motionless or rather, it moved only as
quickly as the air that oozed slowly between the hundreds of cubes,
balls, and disheveled shapes that counted as buildings here. Anything
not tied down hung in the air and drifted gradually, and that meant
trash, animal hair, balls of dirty water, splinters, and scraps of
cloth all contributed to the cloud. When the doldrums of summer broke
and a stiff wind finally did snake through the place, half the mass of
the neighborhood was going to simply blow away, like chaff. For now it
roiled around Venera as she ducked and dove toward the gray blockhouse
that was her destination.


Her business in the building was
brief, but every detail of the transaction seemed etched in
extraordinary detail—for here were people who didn't know who
she was. It was marvelous to be treated as servants and ordinary folk
treated one another, for a change—marvelous and eye opening.
Nobody opened the door to the place for her; she had to do it herself.
Nobody announced her presence, she had to clear her throat and ask the
man behind the counter to help her. And she had to pay,
with her own money!


"The contents of locker six
sixty-four,” she said, holding out the sheet of paper she'd
written the information on. The paper was for his benefit, not hers,
for she'd memorized the brief string of letters and numbers years ago.
Deciphering the letters Uncle Albard had penned on her doll's forehead
had been one of her primary motivations to learn to read.


The keeper of the storage lockers
merely grunted and said, “Get ‘em yourself. If
you've got the combination, you get in, that's the rule.” He
pointed to a doorway at the end of the counter.


She made to go that way, and he
said, “Back pay's owing on that one. Six hundred.”
He grinned like a shark. “We were about to clear it out."


Venera opened her bag, letting
him see the pistol as she rummaged for the cash. He took it without
comment and waved her through the door.


The only thing in the dingy
locker was a water-stained file folder. As she stood in the half light,
flipping through it, Venera decided it was all she needed. The
documents were from the College of Succession at the University of
Candesce, two thousand miles away. They included DNA analyses that
proved her father was not of the royal line.


She barely saw the tumbled
buildings as she left the blockhouse; maybe that's why she got turned
around. But suddenly Venera snapped to attention and realized she was
in a narrow chute formed by five clapboard structures, on her way down,
not up toward the palace. Frowning, she grabbed a handy rope to steady
herself and turned to go back the way she'd come.


"Don't.” The voice was
quiet, and came from above and to the left. Venera flipped over to
orient herself to the speaker. In the gray reflected light from shingle
and tar paper, she saw a youth—perhaps no older than
herself—with tangled red hair and the long bones of someone
raised in too little gravity. He smiled toothily at her and said,
“Bad men coming behind you. Keep going and take your first
hard right, and you'll be safe."


She hesitated, and he scowled.
“Not shittin’ ya. Get going if you know what's good
for you."


Venera flipped again, planted her
feet on the rope, and kicked off down the chute. As she reached the
corner the boy had indicated, she heard voices coming from the far end
of the chute—opposite the way he'd said the bad men were
coming from.


This side way led quickly to
well-traveled airspace and had no niches or doors out of which someone
could spring. Feeling momentarily safe, Venera peeked around the corner
of the chute. Three men were flying slowly up from the left.


"I really think you've gotten us
lost this time,” said the one in the lead. He was in his late
twenties and obviously noble or rich from his dress and demeanor. One
of his companions was similarly dressed, but the third man looked like
a commoner. She couldn't see much more in the dim light. “The
palace is definitely not this way,” continued the leader.
“My appointment is at two o'clock, I can't afford to be late."


Two o'clock? She remembered one
of the courtiers telling her that an admiral from some neighboring
country would be calling on her father in the early afternoon. Was this
the man?


Suddenly one of the other men
shouted, “Hey!” He had barely writhed out of the
way of a sword that had suddenly appeared in the third one's hand.
“Chaison, it's a trap!"


Four men shot down the chute from
the right. They were rough-looking, the sort of thug Venera had watched
roaming the neighborhood through her spyglass and sometimes fantasized
about. All had drawn swords and none spoke as they set upon their two
victims.


The one named Chaison whirled his
cloak into the air between himself and the attackers and drew his sword
as his friend parried a thrust from their erstwhile guide. After the
initial warning from Chaison's friend, nobody spoke.


In a free-fall swordfight, the
blade was as much propulsion as weapon. Each of the men found purchase
in wall or rope or opponent with hand, foot, shoulder, or blade as they
could. Each impact sent them in a new direction, and they tumbled and
spun as they slashed at one another. Venera had watched men practice
with swords and had even witnessed duels, but this was totally
different. There was nothing mannered about it; the fight was swift and
brutal. The men's movements were beautiful, viscerally thrilling and
almost too fast to take in.


One of the attackers was hanging
back. As his face intersected a shaft of light, she realized it was the
boy who had warned her. He held his sword up, wavering, in front of his
face and ducked away from the embattled older men.


It took Venera a few seconds to
realize that two of the men bouncing from wall to wall were now dead.
There were black beads dotting the air—blood—and
more was trailing the bodies, which continued to move, but only
languidly, from momentum. One was the guide who had brought the two
noblemen here; another was one of the attackers.


"Stand down!” Chaison's
voice startled Venera so much that she nearly lost her grip on the
wall. The remaining three attackers paused, holding onto ropes and bent
shingles, and stared at their dead compatriots. The boy looked sick.
Then one of his companions roared in anger and jumped.


He spun away, slashed in the face
by Chaison's companion. The other man had his sword knocked out of his
hand by Chaison, who finished the uppercut motion with a blow to his
jaw.


The boy was hanging in midair
with his sword held out in front of him. Chaison glimpsed him out of
the corner of his eye, spun, and—stopped.


The blade trembled an inch from
the boy's nose. He went white as a sheet.


"I'm not going to hurt
you,” said Chaison. His voice was soft, soothing—in
total contrast to the bellow he had given moments ago. “Who
sent you here?"


The boy gulped and, seeing that
he still held his sword, he let go of it spasmodically. As it drifted
away, he said, “B-big man from palace. Red feather in his
hat. Didn't give a name."


Chaison made a sour face.
“All right. Now off with you. Find another line of
work—oh, and some better friends.” He reached for
his companion's wrist and they locked arms to coordinate their flight.
Together they turned to leave.


The man who'd been struck in the
chin suddenly snapped his head up and raised his arm. A snub-nosed
pistol gleamed in his grimy fist. The boy gasped as he aimed it
point-blank at the back of Chaison's head.


Bang! A
spray of blood filled the air and the boy shrieked.


Venera peered through the blue
cloud of gunsmoke. Chaison's would-be assassin was twitching in the
air, and both noblemen were staring past him, at her.


She returned the pistol to her
carrying bag. “I-I saw you were in trouble,” she
said, surprised at how calm she sounded. “There was no time
to warn you."


Chaison glided over. He looked
impressed. “Thank you, madam,” he said, graciously
ducking his head. “I owe you my life."


In her fantasies, Venera always
had a perfect comeback line at moments like this. What she actually
said was, “Oh, I don't know about that."


He laughed.


Then he extended his hand.
“Come. We'll need to explain ourselves to the local police."


Venera flushed and backed away.
She couldn't be caught out here—quite apart from the scandal,
her father would ask too many questions. The papers she had just
recovered might come to his attention, and then she was as good as dead.


"I can't,” she said and
turning, kicked off from the corner as hard as she could.


She heard him shouting for her to
stop, but Venera kept on and didn't look back until she had passed
through three crowded markets and slipped down five narrow alleys
between soon-to-collide buildings. Cautiously, she worked her way back
to the palace and changed in the guardroom while the man she'd bribed
to let her out and in again waited nervously outside.


The next time she saw Chaison
Fanning it would be two nights later, at a formal ball. He told her
much later that his astonishment when he recognized her completely
drove out all thoughts of the new treaty with Hale that he was
celebrating. Certainly the expression on his face was priceless.


Venera had her own reason to
smile, as she had learned who had tried to have this handsome young
admiral killed. And as she danced with Chaison Fanning, she mused about
what exact words she would use when she confronted her father. She
already knew what it was she would be asking him for in exchange for
her silence regarding his nonroyal origins.


For the first time in her young
life, Venera Fanning began to conceive of an existence for herself away
from the intrigue and cruelty of the Court of Hale.


* * * *


4


A thick cable rose from the roof
of the Nation of Liris. Venera squinted at it, then at the
blunderbusses the soldiers cradled. Another, larger blunderbuss was
mounted on a pivot under a little roof nearby. That must be the
damnable gun whose firing kept waking her up in the morning.


None of those ancient arms looked
very accurate. She could probably just jump off the roof and run for it
... but run where? Chances were she'd be snapped up by some neighbor
worse than these people.


She decided—for the
tenth time today—to remain patient and see what happened. No
one in Liris seemed to have any immediate desire to harm her. Her best
strategy was to play along with them until the moment came when she
could escape.


"Now pay attention,”
whined Samson Odess. The fish-faced little man had been introduced
yesterday as her new boss. The very idea of a commoner giving her
orders without an immediate threat to back them up struck Venera as
both bizarre and funny. She had so far done the things he had asked,
but Odess seemed to sense that she wasn't taking him seriously. He was
becoming ever more defensive as the morning wore on.


"This is our lifeline to Lesser
Spyre,” Odess said, slapping the cable. Venera saw that he
stood on a low platform, at the center of which was a boxy machine that
clamped the cable with big ratchet wheels. “By means of this
engine, we can rise to the city above, where the Great Fair is held
once a week. Visitors from everywhere in Virga come to the Fair. It is
the trade delegation's sacred task to ensure that we conduct the most
advantageous transactions in the name of Liris.” As he spoke,
the rest of the delegation popped up through the roof's one hatch. Four
heavily armed men bracketed an iron box that must have held pitted
cherries. Flanking them were two men and two women, the women veiled
like Venera and dressed in ceremonial robes of highly polished silver,
inlaid with crimson enamel.


"Is the gravity the same up there
as it is here?” Venera asked. If it was a standard g,
they wouldn't be able to move.


Odess shook his head vigorously.
“You can see the spin-rate from down here. We'll shed our
heavy vestments for city clothes once we're up there."


"Why not change down
here?” she asked, puzzled.


Odess goggled at her in
astonishment. He'd stared exactly that way yesterday, when he was first
introduced. Moss had taken Venera to Odess's office, a glorified closet
that made her wonder if Diamandis's pack-rat ways might not be the rule
here, rather than the exception. Odess had filled the small space over
the years, perhaps his whole lifetime, with oddments and souvenirs that
likely made sense to no one but him. What was the significance of that
single shoe, mounted as though it were a trophy and given its own
little niche in the wall? Could anyone read the faded text on those
certificates hung behind his chair? And was that some sort of exotic
mobile that drooled from the dimness overhead, or the hanging mummified
remains of some sort of animal? Books were stacked everywhere, and a
pile of dishes three feet tall teetered next to a rolled-up mattress.


Odess's first words were
addressed to Moss, not Venera. “You expect us to accept this
... this outsider in our midst?"


"Is th-that not what you
d-do?” Moss had asked. “G-go outside?”
Startled, Venera had sent him a sidelong look. Was there somebody home
behind those glazed eyes, after all?


"B-besides, the b-botanist
commanded it."


"Oh, God.” Odess had
put his head in his hands. “She thinks she can do anything
now."


Any slight deviation from routine
or custom threw Odess into a panic. Venera's very presence was
upsetting him, though the rest of the delegation had been pathetically
happy to meet her. They would have partied till dawn if she hadn't
begged off early, pointing out that she had not yet seen the room where
she was expected to sleep for the rest of her life.


Eilen, Mistress of Scales and
Measures, had shown Venera to a closet just outside the delegation's
long, cabinet-lined office. The closet was seven feet on a
side—its walls of whitewashed stone—and nearly
twelve feet high. There was room for a bed and a small table, and there
was no window. “You can put your chest under the
bed,” Eilen said, “when you get one. Your clothes
you can hang on those pegs for now."


And that was all. If Venera were
inclined to sympathy with other people, she would have been saddened at
the thought that Eilen, Odess, and the others accepted conditions like
these as the norm. After all, they had likely been born and raised in
such tiny chambers. Their playgrounds were dusty servants’
ways, their schoolrooms window niches. Yet of all the citizens of
Liris, they were the privileged ones, for as members of the delegation
they were allowed to see something of the world outside their walls.


While Odess sputtered and tried
to explain why tradition demanded that they rise to Lesser Spyre in
full ceremonial gear, Venera watched the soldiers deposit their
precious cargo on the platform. After the rest of the delegation was on
board, they flipped up railings on all sides (to her relief) and one
bent to examine the archaic engine. This was what really interested her.


"If we're all ready, we will sing
the Hymn of Ascension,” said Odess, portentously.


Venera looked around.
“The what?"


He looked as though he'd been
slapped—but Eilen put a hand on his arm. “We didn't
tell her about it, so how would she know?"


"Anyone in Spyre could see us
arise, hear the...” He realized his mistake. “Ah
yes. A true foreigner.” Shaking himself, he put both hands on
the rail and puffed out his cheeks. “Listen, then, and learn
the ways of a civilized society."


While they sang their little
ditty, Venera watched the soldier spark the hulking rotary engine into
life. Its chattering roar immediately drowned out the miniature choir,
who didn't seem to notice. The wheel turned, gripping the cable, and
the platform inched slowly into the air.


The purpose of the railings soon
became clear. Only a few yards above the rooftop they caught the edge
of the howling gale that swept toward the open end of Spyre. This
steady hurricane was produced by the rotation of the great cylinder,
Venera knew; she'd seen its like in smaller wheels like those of Rush.
A wind came in at the cylinder's axis of rotation and shot out again
along the rim. If she simply jumped off the platform at this point, she
would be propelled out of Spyre entirely, and at goodly force.


The four soldiers were here to
shoot anyone who tried that. And now that they were higher up she could
see other guarantors of obedience: gun emplacements were suspended in
the middle air by more cables, and some of them were visibly manned.
Hanging in the sunny clouds beyond the wheel were more bunkers and
turrets. It seemed a miracle now that she had, unconscious, threaded
her way between them all to land here.


"Father would love this
place,” she muttered.


Chaison Fanning, her missing
husband, would probably consider Spyre a moral obscenity, and would
want to blow it up.


They rose some miles, through
filigrees of cloud, puffballs that hovered like anxious angels between
the incoming and outblowing gales; past houses and pillboxes bolted to
other cables, whose glittering windows revealed nothing of what might
be taking place inside them. The lands of Greater Spyre widened and
widened below Venera, their patchwork estates becoming a mesmerizing
labyrinth: the blockhouses of a dozen, a hundred and more Nations of
Liris, it seemed, painted the inside of the cylinder. Slicing through
these, leaving ruin and wildflowers on their sidings, were the railways
of the preservationists.


All the while, Lesser Spyre came
closer.


Venera had seen a geared town
once before—in the dead hollow heart of Leaf's Choir, Chaison
Fanning's ships had moored next to the asphyxiated city of Carlinth.
But Carlinth's pale grandeur couldn't match the wonder of Lesser Spyre
because that other city had been motionless in death, and Lesser Spyre
lived. Its great wheel-shaped habitats, each a half mile or more in
diameter, turned edge to angled edge like the meshwork of a vast clock.
The citizen of one wheel could stroll to its edge and simply step onto
the surface of another as their rims came within touching distance. The
wheels were kept in configuration by a lattice of giant spars and thick
cables, from which black banners fluttered.


For all this cunning and motion,
Lesser Spyre did not look inviting. There were some houses and
streeets, but most of the wheels were dominated on their inside surface
by one or two sprawling buildings. The Admiralty at Rush had been like
that, as had the Pilot's palace. But also in Rush there were wheels
weeded with taverns, towers, and twisting streets, as organic and
inviting as a party.


Lesser Spyre was monolithic,
self-contained, and controlled. Almost nothing stuck out.


The cable car eluded gravity
entirely after a while, and its passengers clipped their metal costumes
to the railing and waited until their destination hove into sight. The
cable terminated in a knot of dozens of others, at a complicated
cagework that threaded the axle of a town-wheel. Venera could see other
people embarking and disembarking there. They moved in small groups
that gave one another a wide berth.


She saw something else, though,
that gave her hope for the first time in days: ships were berthed here.
Sleek yachts, for the most part, of many different designs and flying
diverse colors—but all foreign. They signaled the possibility
of escape, real escape, for the first time since her arrival.


She tapped Odess's tin shoulder
and pointed. “Our customers?"


He nodded. “Pilgrims
from all the principalities of Candesce come to us, hoping to leave
again with some trinket or token of ours. Do you recognize any of those
ships?"


Venera nodded. “That
one is from Gehellen.” It was the only one she knew, but
Odess was obviously impressed. “I know that we'll trade them
cherries,” she went on. “But what do the rest of
Spyre's countries sell?"


He laughed, and just then the
platform came to rest at its terminus. As they clambered over to the
axle like so many iron spiders, Odess said, “What do they
trade? You ask that with refreshing innocence. If we knew what half our
neighbors traded, we might arrange some extra advantage for Liris. The
fame of many of Spyre's commodities is spread far and
wide—but not all. There are sections of the fair no stranger
can enter without providing a guarantee of circumspection."


"A what?"


"A hostage, sometimes,”
said Eilen. They had entered a long cylindrical chamber with many small
doors spiraling up its interior. Odess found one of these and,
producing a massive key, unlocked it. Inside was a slot-shaped locker,
its walls encrusted with rust and cobwebs, with one incongruously
bright mirror at the far end. Odess and the others proceeded to strip
off their metal shells, trading them for ornately tooled leather
equivalents—except that in place of veils, each costume came
with an elaborate mask. Odess passed a kit to Venera, and she turned
her back modestly to change. Her mask had a falcon's beak.


"There are nations,”
Odess said, “that average one customer every ten years.
Whatever it is they trade, it is so fabulously valuable that the whole
country lives off the sale for a generation. That's an extreme example,
but there are many others who guard the nature of their produce with
their lives. Liris used to be one such. Now everyone knows what we
produce, but that's actually worked to our advantage."


"But what can those others be
selling?” Venera shook her head in incomprehension. She was
stretching a black jacket over a silver-traced vest, admiring the
effect in the mirror. With the mask in place she looked intimidating.
She liked the effect.


"She is from
one of them.” It was one of the soldiers who said it. He
didn't have to say who she was; Venera knew he
meant the botanist.


Venera raised an eyebrow.
“She wasn't born in Liris?"


The soldier shook his head,
glancing uneasily at Odess. “Our previous botanist ... the
trees were languishing, m'lady. They were dying, until she
came.” Odess was scowling in obvious warning, but the soldier
shrugged. “Five years now, she's brought them back to health."


"And you don't know anything
about where she came from?"


"Of course we do!”
Odess laughed loudly. “She's a lady of the Nation of Sacrus.
We know who she is ... even if we don't know what it is that Sacrus does."


"You need better
spies,” said Venera. Nobody laughed, but the thought
intrigued her. Spyre, it seemed, was an investigator's playground. She
would love to develop a network here, the way she had in secret in her
adopted home of Slipstream.


They moved from the locker
cylinder to the axle of the town-wheel. Here, dozens of yin-yang stairs
and elevator shafts ran down to the copper-shingled roofs of the vast
buildings lining the wheel. Odess showed their letters of transit to a
succession of inspectors and gradually they worked their way over to
one of the elevators.


"Stay alert, everyone,”
Odess said as the wrought-iron doors grumbled shut behind them, and
they began to move down. “Watch for any signs of change. In
particular, our new interpreter,” he nodded at Venera,
“is going to cause a stir. We need to stick to our agreed
story. You,” he said to Venera, “must only speak to
the customers, and then only when we ask you to. We don't want to give
our rivals any clues about our capabilities or what's been going on
inside Liris."


This paranoia reminded Venera of
Hale and the darkened corridors of her father's palace. “But
why?” she asked in irritation. “Why this skulking?"


"Questions might be
asked,” said Odess darkly. “About where you came
from. About why our people might have ventured outside our walls. Where
we might have gone, what we might have seen. What you
might have seen.” He shook his head. “Your story is
that you were born and raised in Liris."


"But my accent—"


"Is why you will only speak to
the customers."


There was silence for the rest of
the ride. Venera adjusted her veil, glanced around, and noted the
tightening of shoulders, straightening of stances as gravity rose until
it neared the level she was used to. And then the elevator clunked to a
halt, and the doors opened.


The trade delegation of Liris
edged cautiously into the Great Fair of Spyre.


* * * *


Fabulous beasts swept across the
dance floor, their skirts wheeling in time to the deep drumbeat of
Spyre's music. The beasts had the faces of monsters, of animals, of
gods. They danced in pairs, sometimes pausing in midpose as the music
paused. It was during those pauses that business was transacted.


One slender figure with a hawk's
face stood at the foot of a gold-chased pillar, her backdrop a blue trompe
l'oeil vista of wheeling towns. She watched the dancers
alertly, aware of the deep strains of paranoia and deceit that must run
through Spyre for it to have developed this custom. For this filigreed
and gleaming ballroom and its whirling dancers was the Great Fair
itself.


True, there were display rooms.
Out of the corner of her eye she saw Odess emerging from the doorway
that led to Liris's. He was alone, and doubtless his errand had been to
check on the disposition of the glass cases and lights there. No
customers had passed that door since she had been here.


Venera had spent some hours in
the display room, helping the others set up. A solitary cherry tree
dominated the marbled parlor; it sat in a broad stone bowl, the glow of
its pink blossoms the first sight that greeted a visitor. It was a
fake, made of silk and common woods.


While Liris's soldiers played
cards behind a screen in the display rooms, the rest of the delegation
danced. The music was loud, the dances fast and close; so conversation
consisted of quick whispers in your partner's ear, quips at arm's
length, or brief nose to nose exchanges. Eavesdropping was impossible
in these circumstances—and the soldiers of Spyre watched
carefully for any sign of it. Venera had been told that visitors were
carefully screened, and the penalty for revealing secrets here was
death. Ironically, the whole setup seemed designed for cheating, for
who could tell what any two dancers were telling one another?


She had heard that the dances
were occasionally interrupted by spontaneous duels.


The denizens of Spyre took their
masque very seriously. Not all the visitors did; most eschewed
disguises, and so Venera was able to tell how many principalities were
represented here. She even recognized one or two of the national
costumes they wore.


A gavotte ended and the dancers
broke up. Gorgon-headed Eilen headed Venera's way. A waiting footman
handed her a drink as she paused, panting. “Is it always like
this?” Venera asked her. “Interested customers seem
a bit thin on the ground."


"We have our regulars,”
said Eilen. “It's not the season for any of them. Oh, this
gravity! It pulls at my stomach."


Venera sighed. These people were
so immersed in their traditions that they couldn't see the insanity of
it all. In the brief pause between dances, some of the customers had
drifted off with outlandishly masked delegates—salesmen,
really. Venera had been keeping track of who went through which
doorways. Many of the portals around the vast chamber had never opened.
They might be locked or even bricked up on the other side, for all she
knew.


She couldn't figure out the
architecture of the fair. It seemed that the sprawling, multi-winged
building had been renovated, rebuilt, and reimagined so many times over
the centuries that it had lost any sense of its original logic.
Corridors ran into blank walls; stairwells led nowhere; elevator shafts
opened onto roaring air where lower floors had once been. Behind the
public walls countless narrow passages twisted their ways to the
offices, storage lockers, and panic rooms of the trade delegations.
Liris's domain extended several floors above and below their public
showroom; Venera had glimpsed in passing a huge chamber, like a
collapsing ballroom, its dripping casements lost in gloomy shadows.
Eilen had told her that this was where they met customers back when
their cherries were a state secret. The ballroom was on one of the
high-security levels of the fair; Liris still owned title to it, but
had no use for it now.


Venera had scoffed at this.
“Has no one had the courage to drill spy holes in the walls
to find out what your neighbors are up to?” Odess had sent
her one of his disapproving, frightened looks, but nobody had said
anything.


Oh, something was
happening—Capri, Eilen's apprentice, was leading four people
in rich clothes toward the Liris door. The little surge of excitement
was absurd, and Venera nearly laughed at herself. Now Odess was bowing
to them. He was opening the door. Venera imagined cheering.


"Who are they?” she
asked Eilen.


"Oh! Success! That's ... let's
see ... the delegates from Tracoune."


Venera ransacked her memory; why
was that word familiar? Ah, that was it. It was only a couple of weeks
ago that Venera and her husband had attended a soiree in the capital of
Gehellen. The event had been unremarkable up until the shooting
started, but she did remember a long conversation with a red-faced
admiral of the local navy. He had mentioned Tracoune.


"Excuse me, I'd like to watch
this,” she said to Eilen. The woman shrugged and turned back
to the dance. Venera threaded her way around the outskirts of the ball
and pushed open the door to the Liris showroom. It was at the end of a
long hallway, seventy feet at least in length. Random words echoed back
at her as Venera walked down it.


Odess was showing them the tree.
Now he was opening a lacquered box to reveal the cherries. Capri
hovered nervously in the background.


The visitors didn't seem too
impressed. One of the four—a woman—wandered away
from the others to stare idly at the paintings on the walls. They
seemed to be marking time here, perhaps taking a break from dancing.
Even Venera, with no experience in sales, could tell that.


She approached the woman.
“Excuse me...” said Venera. She deliberately did
not stand or move the way Odess and Capri were—clasping their
hands in front of them, darting hesitantly like servants. Instead,
Venera bowed like an equal.


"Yes?” The customer
looked surprised, but not displeased at being approached in this way.


"Do I have the pleasure of
addressing a citizen of Tracoune?” The woman nodded.


"I had the most illuminating
conversation recently,” Venera continued, “at a
party in Gehellen. We talked about Tracoune."


An edge of calculation came into
the woman's gaze. “Oh, really? Who were you talking to?"


"An admiral in the Gehellen navy,
as it happens.” Venera saw Odess notice that she was
accosting a customer (his expression said, ‘the new one's
loose!') and then he started trying to make eye contact with her while
pretending to give his full attention to his own people.


Venera smiled. “I'm so
sorry that you've had to cancel the Feast of Saint Jackson this
year,” she said to her prospect. “The Gehellenese
are speculating that you won't be able to afford to feed your own
people this time next year. Gauche of them, really."


"They said that?” The
woman's face darkened in anger. “The Incident at Tibo was
hardly that serious!"


"Ah, we thought not,”
said Venera in a conspiratorial way. “It's just that
appearance is so important to international relations, isn't it?"


Ten minutes later the visitors
were signing on the dotted line. Venera stood behind the astounded
trade delegation of Liris, her arms crossed, inscrutable behind her
beaked mask.


Odess stepped back to whisper
furiously to her. “How did you do it? These people have never
been customers before!"


She shrugged. “You just
have to know people's weaknesses. In a few weeks Tracoune will throw
some minor party for visiting officials, and among other things they'll
give away a few cherries ... as if they could afford boatloads of them.
A very discreet message, on a channel so private that almost no one on
either side will know why when the Gehellens decide not
to call in their outstanding loans to Tracoune—which they've
been thinking of doing."


He glared at her. “But
how could..."


She nodded. “The levers
of diplomacy are very small. The art lies in knowing where to pry."


Venera chatted with the clients
while a soldier loaded a carrying case with dry ice and Odess measured
out the pitted cherries. “Speaking of Gehellen,”
Venera said after a while, “we heard about some sort of
commotion there a couple of weeks ago."


The head of the Tracoune
expedition laughed. “Oh, that! They're the laughingstock of
the principalities!"


"But what happened?"


He grinned. “Visitors
from one of the savage nations ... Oh, what was the name?"


"Slipstream,” said the
woman Venera had first dealt with.


"Slipstream, that was it. Seems
an admiral of Slipstream went mad and took to piracy with some of his
captains. They fought a pitched battle with the Gehellen navy in the
very capital itself! Smashed their way out of the palace and escaped
into Leaf's Choir, where it's rumored they found and made off with the
Hoard of Anetene itself!"


"But that part's too
preposterous, of course,” said the woman. “If
they'd found the hoard, they would have a key to Candesce as
well—the last one is supposed to be the centerpiece of the
hoard. With that they could have ruled all of Virga from the sun of
suns itself!"


"Well.” The man
shrugged.


"What happened to
them?” asked Venera. “Did they escape?"


"Oh, they evaded the Gehellen
navy right enough,” he said with another laugh.
“Only to be cut to ribbons in some barbarous nation near the
edge of the world. None escaped, I hear."


"None...” Venera's
pulse was racing, but she chose not to believe this man. His story had
too many of the facets of rumor.


"Oh, no, I've been following this
one,” said the woman, with evident enjoyment. “It
seems the Slipstreamers ran afoul of a place called Falcon Formation.
The admiral suicidally rammed his flagship into some sort of
dreadnaught of Falcon's. Both ships were obliterated in the explosion.
Of his six other ships, only one got away."


"Its name?” Venera put
her hand out to steady herself. Her fingers met the false bark of the
fake cherry tree.


"What's name?"


"The ... the ship that escaped.
Did you hear which one escaped?"


The woman looked affronted.
“I didn't follow the story that
closely.” Now it was her turn to laugh. “But they
foolishly ran for home, and the Pilot of Slipstream had them arrested
the instant they came into port. For treason! What foolishness of them
to even try to go home."


Venera was glad of the mask she
wore. It felt like her heart was slowing and would stop at any second.
It was all she could do to keep up appearances until the Tracoune
delegation left with their first consignment of cherries. Then she
rushed back to the screened alcove, ignoring the jubilant
congratulations the others were lavishing on her.


Even though the mask would have
hid them, she shed no tears. Venera had learned many years ago never to
do that in the presence of another human being.


* * * *


5


That evening there was a
celebration in a gallery overlooking the cherry trees. Amber light
poured into the blued central shaft, glinting off windows and outlining
shutters and balconies above and below, while small gusts of air still
warm from Candesce's light teased the diaphanous drapes. Like
everywhere else in Liris, the party room was small, crammed with
memorabilia and eccentric furnishings, and reachable only through a
labyrinth of stairs and corridors. It reminded Venera of her childhood
bedroom.


She had not wanted to come. All
she wanted to do was sit alone in her closet. But Eilen insisted.
“Why so gloomy?” she asked as she leaned hipshot in
Venera's doorway. “You did great service to your country
today!” Venera didn't speak as they walked, and she did her
best to be the ghost at the wedding for the remainder of the night.


Her sorrow wasn't catching. Most
of Liris turned out for the event, and a dizzying parade of strange and
neurotic characters passed in front of Venera as she systematically
drank herself into a stupor. There were the hereditary soldiers with
their peaked helmets and blunderbusses; the gray sanitation men who
spoke in monotones and huddled together near the drinks table; the
seamstresses and chandlers, carpenters, and cleaners who all spoke a
secret language they had developed together in their childhood. And
there were children, too—grave, wide-eyed gamins who skirted
around Venera as though she had stepped out of one of their fantasy
books.


She watched them all go by, numb.
I knew that this might happen, she told herself. That
he might die. Yet she had gone ahead with her plan, dragging
Chaison reluctantly into it. It had been necessary if they were to save
Slipstream; she knew that. But the decision still felt like a betrayal.


"It's so electric,”
said Eilen now, “having a new face in our world!”
Quite drunk, she balanced on one foot near Venera, waving excitedly at
people she had seen every day of her life. Of those people, a few had
approached and introduced themselves, halting and stammering; most
stayed back, muttering together and eyeing Venera. Foreigner. Strange
beast. New darling of the botanist.


And yes, the botanist was here,
too. She glided through the celebrants as though on rails, nodding here
and there, speaking strategic words on the outskirts of discussions,
the same mysterious smile as always hovering just behind her lips.
Eventually she made her way over to Venera. She hove to just this side
of Eilen. Eilen herself moved away, suddenly quiet.


"I've always said that it pays to
know your customers,” the botanist said. “I judged
your potential rightly."


Venera eyed her. “Is
that what you feel you do? Judge people's potential? Like the buds of
flowers that might bloom or whither?"


"How apt. Yes, that's exactly
right,” said the botanist. “Some are to be
encouraged, others cut from the branch. You nod as though you
understand."


"I've done a certain amount of
... pruning ... in my day,” said Venera. “So I've
achieved a great victory for your tiny nation. Now what?"


"Now,” said the
botanist in a breathless sort of sisterly way, “we talk about
what to do next. You see, you've vindicated my methods. I believe Liris
needs to be more open to the outside world—that we need to
send our delegates farther, even outside Spyre itself."


The fog of Venera's sorrow lifted
just a bit. “Leave Spyre? What do you mean?"


"I would like to send a trade
mission to one of the principalities,” said the botanist.
“You, of course, would lead it."


"I'd be honored,” said
Venera with a straight face. “But isn't it Odess's job to
arrange such things?"


"Odess?” The botanist
waved her hand dismissively. “Prattling whiner. Take him if
you'd like, but I can't see what good he'll do you. No, I picture you,
perhaps Eilen, and one or two loyal soldiers. And a consignment of our
treasure to tempt potential customers."


"That sounds
reasonable.” Venera couldn't believe what she was hearing.
Did the woman seriously believe she would come back if she got out of
this place? But then, everyone in Spyre seemed dangerously naive.


"Good. Say nothing of this to the
others,” instructed the botanist severely. “It
won't do to let old wounds fester."


What did that mean? Venera
thought about it as the botanist strolled away, but then Eilen returned
and spilled her drink on Venera's shoes. The evening went downhill from
there, and so she didn't really ponder the botanist's unlikely offer
until she got back to her closet, near dawn.


She had just closed the
ill-fitting door and was about to climb under the covers when there was
a polite knock on the jamb. Venera cracked the door an inch.


Moss leaned like a decapitated
tree outside her door. “Citizen F-f-fanning,” he
said. “I j-just wanted to give you th-th-these."


In the faint lamplight of the
hallway, she could just make out a tiny bouquet of posies in his hand.


The juxtaposition of his chiseled
features with the emptiness of his eyes made her skin crawl. Venera
slipped her hand out to snatch the little bundle of flowers from his
nerveless fingers. “Thanks. You're not in love with me, are
you?"


"I'm s-s-sorry you're so
s-sad,” he murmured. “T-t-try not to be so s-s-sad."


Venera gaped at him. His words
had been so quiet, but they seemed to echo on and on in the silent
corridor. “Sad? Why do you think I'm sad?"


Nobody else had
noticed—not even Eilen, who had been watching Venera like a
mother hawk all evening. Venera narrowed her eyes. “I didn't
see you at the party. Where were you?"


"I w-w-was there. In the
c-corner."


Present yet absent. That seemed
to sum Moss up. “Well.” Venera looked down at
Moss's present. Somehow she had clenched her fist and had crushed the
little white blossoms.


"Thank you,” she said.
Moss turned away with a muted clattering noise.
“Moss,” she said quickly. He looked back.


"I don't want you to be sad,
either,” said Venera.


He shambled away and Venera
closed the door softly. Once alone, she let loose one long shuddering
sigh and tumbled face-first onto the bed.


* * * *


The next morning, Venera wore the
half-crushed posies on the breast of her jacket. If anybody noticed,
they said nothing. She ate her breakfast with the members of the
delegation in their designated dining room—a roofed-over
air-shaft lined floor to invisible ceiling with stuffed
animals—and followed them silently to their offices. She had
discerned the routine by now: they would sit around for the rest of the
day, occasionally engaging in desultory, short-lived dialogs, have
lunch and then supper, and turn in.


If she had to live like this for
more than a couple of days, Venera knew she would snap. So, at ten
o'clock, she said, “Can't we at least play cards?"


One of the soldiers glanced over,
then shook his head mournfully. “Odess always wins."


"But I'm here now,”
said Venera. “What if I were to win?"


Slowly, they roused into a state
resembling the attentive. With much cajoling and browbeating, Venera
got them to reveal the location of the cards, and once she had these
she energetically pulled a table and some chairs into the center of the
room. “Sit,” she commanded, “and learn."


This was her opportunity to grill
her compatriots properly—the party last night had been too
hectic and strange, with everyone playing pal in transparent
ways—and Venera made the best of it. After ten minutes Odess
emerged from his office, looking bleary and cross, but his eyes lit up
when he saw her shuffling the cards. Venera grinned sloppily at him and
he drew up a chair.


"So,” she said as the
others examined their cards, “tell me about the botanist."


The Pantry War had been dragging
on for five years. Liris and the Duchy of Vatoris both claimed a five-
by seven-foot room off one of the twisting corridors of the fair. The
titles went back a hundred years, and the wording was ambiguous.
Neither side would back down.


"War?” said Venera as
she peered over her cards. “Don't you mean feud?"


The other players all shook their
heads. No, explained Odess, a feud was a family thing. This was a
conflict between professional soldiers, and it took the form of pitched
battles—even if those battles were between a dozen or so
soldiers on either side, which was all the manpower the tiny nations
could muster. After years of ambushes, raids, firefights, and all
manner of other mayhem, it had settled into a war of attrition.
Barricades had been thrown up in the disputed corridor; a no-man's-land
of broken furniture and cracked tile stretched for thirty feet between
them. The entrance to the closet beckoned only yards away, and either
side could capture it in seconds. The trick was to hold it.


The two sides dug in. The
barricades were ramified and reinforced, then backed up with cannon and
rifles. Days might pass without a shot fired, but the other tenants of
the fair got used to sudden flurries of gunfire. Rarely was anyone
actually hurt. The loss of a single man would constitute a disaster.


These things happened. Even now,
the fair was riddled with strange tensions—empty passages
paved in dust where no one had walked in generations because of just
such disputes as this; neighbors who would think nothing of murdering
one another in quiet corners if they had the chance; victims walled up
in alcoves; and everywhere, conspiracies.


It was a random bullet that
changed everything. The walls around the disputed hallway had never
been strong, but the combatants had hired a neutral third party to
shore them up at regular intervals. Perhaps it was inevitable, though,
that chinks and cracks should develop. One day, a bullet fired from the
Vatoris barricade slipped through such a crack, ricocheted sixty feet
down an abandoned air shaft, and killed the heir of a major nation as
he stood at a punch bowl.


Venera rubbed her jaw.
“I can imagine the reaction."


"I'm not sure you can,”
said Odess portentously. The nation in question was the mysterious Land
of Sacrus, a country of “vast size,” according to
Eilen.


"How vast?"


"Fully three square miles!"


Sacrus traded in
power—but exactly how, no one was quite sure. They were one
of the most secretive of countries, their fields being dotted with
windowless factories, the perimeter patrolled by guards with dogs and
guns. Small airships bristling with guns bobbed above the main complex.
The Sacrans emerged from their smoke-wreathed towers only once or twice
a year, and then they spoke almost exclusively to their customers. They
were one of the few nations that had withstood the full force of the
preservationists—in fact, nobody in the preservationist camp
would talk about just how badly that particular battle had gone.


Sacrus was enraged at the death
of their heir. Three days after the incident, the Vatoris barricade
fell silent. The soldiers of Liris fired a few shots and got no
response. When they cautiously advanced on the Vatoris position, they
found it abandoned.


Discrete inquiries were made. No
one had seen any of the Vatorins since the day of the fateful gunshot.
In a moment of supreme daring, Liris sent its troops directly to the
Vatoris apartments. They were empty.


At this point, rumors of a great
stench rising from Vatoris itself reached Odess's ears. “I
was sitting in our showroom,” he said. “I remember
it like it was yesterday. One of the scions of a minor nation entered
and told me that his people were walking up and down along the border
with Vatoris, sniffing the air and exchanging rumors. The smell was the
smell of death."


Odess returned home that night to
warn his people. “But it was too late. As I lay down to sleep
that evening, I heard it—we all did.” A hissing
sound filled the chambers of Liris. It was faint, but for someone like
Odess, who had lived behind these walls his whole life, it had the
effect of a siren.


"I stood, tried to run to the
door. I fell down.” The others related similar experiences,
of sudden paralysis, landings behind desks or next to wavering doors.
“We lay there helpless, all of us, unable to even focus our
eyes. And we listened."


What they heard, after an hour or
so, was a single set of footsteps. They moved smoothly from room to
room, up stairs and down, not as if seeking anything, but as though
whoever walked were taking inventory—committing every passage
and chamber of Liris to memory. Eventually, they came to a stop.
Silence returned.


The paralysis faded near dawn.
Odess rose, retched miserably for a few minutes, and
then—trembling—crept in the direction those
footsteps had taken. As he went he saw others emerging from their
rooms, or rising from where they had fallen in mid walk. They converged
on the place where the footsteps had halted: in the cherry tree
courtyard.


"And there she sat,”
said Odess, “exactly as she sits these days, with the same
damned smile and the same damned air of superiority. The botanist. Our
conqueror."


"And no one has challenged
her?” Venera barked a laugh of disbelief. “You fear
reprisals, is that it?"


Odess shrugged. “She
ended the war, and under her leadership, the cherries bloom. Who else
are we going to have lead us?"


Venera scowled at her cards. A
pulse of pain shot up her jaw. “I thought you were a
meritocracy."


"And so we are. And she is the
best botanist we have ever had."


"What happened to the one she
replaced?"


They exchanged glances.
“We don't know,” confessed Eilen. “He
disappeared the day Margit came."


Venera discarded one card and
took another from the deck. The others did the same, then she fanned
out her hand. “I win."


Odess grimaced and began to
shuffle.


"She came to me last
night,” said Venera. She had decided that she needed
information more than discretion at this point. “Margit was
pleased with the work I did.” Odess snorted; Venera ignored
him and continued. “She had a proposal."


She told them about Margit's idea
of an extended trade expedition into the principalities. As she did,
Venera watched all movement around the table stop. Even Odess's
practiced hand ceased its fanning of the cards. They were all staring
at her.


"What?” She glanced
around defensively. “Does this violate some ancient
taboo?—I'm sure, everything else does. Or is it something
you've been trying to get done for years, and now you're mad that the
newcomer has achieved it?"


Eilen looked down.
“It's been tried before,” she said in a quiet voice.


"You must understand,”
said Odess; then he fell silent. Knitting his brows, he started
furiously shuffling.


"What?” Now Venera was
seriously alarmed. “What's wrong?"


"To travel outside Spyre ... is
not done,” said Odess reluctantly. “Not without
safeguards to guarantee one's return. Hostages, if one is married ...
but you're not."


Venera was disgusted.
“The pillboxes, the guns and razor wire—they really
aren't to keep people out, are they? They're to
keep them in."


"Yes, but you see, if Margit is
willing to send you out despite you having no ties here, no hostages or
anything she could hold over you ... Then she's obviously willing to
try it again,” said Odess. He slammed the deck down on the
table, kicked his chair back, and walked away. Venera watched him go in
startled amazement.


The soldiers were standing too,
not making eye contact with anyone.


Venera pinned Eilen with her
gaze. “Try what?"


The woman sighed deeply.
“Margit is a master of chemistry and biology,” she
said. “That's why she is the botanist. Three years ago she
conceived the idea of sending an expedition like the one you're
describing. She chose a man who was competent, intelligent, and brave,
but one whom she didn't completely trust. To guarantee that he would
return, she ... injected him. With a slow poison that was not supposed
to begin to act for ten days. If he returned within those ten days, she
would give him the antidote, and he would be fine."


Venera eyed the splayed cards.
“What happened?"


"The return flight was delayed by
a storm. He made it back on the eleventh day."


Venera hesitated—but
she already knew the answer when she asked, “Who was it that
Margit sent?"


"Moss,” said Eilen with
a shudder. “She sent Moss."


* * * *


6


"I have to admit I was expecting
this,” said Margit. Venera stood in the doorway to her
apartment; she was dressed down in close-fitting black leathers. Two
soldiers hulked behind her, their meaty hands resting heavy on her
shoulders.


"In retrospect,” Venera
said ruefully, “I should have anticipated the trip
wires.” The inside walls of the courtyard were just too
enticing a surface; freed of her metal clothing, Venera weighed only
twenty pounds or so and she could easily clamber hand-over-hand up the
drainpipe that ran next to Odess's little window. “There's no
other way in or out of the building but up that wall. Naturally, you'd
have alarms."


"...I just wasn't anticipating it
so soon,” said Margit. She twitched a housecoat over her
lavender nightgown and lit another candle off the one she was holding.
Even in the dimness of midnight Venera could see that her apartment was
sumptuous, with several rooms, high ceilings, and tiled mosaics on the
floor beneath numerous tapestries.


Of course Margit wouldn't live
like the people she ruled. Venera wouldn't have, either. She understood
Margit enough by now that staying here in Liris had not been an option.
So after bidding her coworkers good night, she had retired to her
closet and waited. When the building was silent and dark, Venera had
crept out and jimmied open a window that led onto the courtyard.


Admittedly, she hadn't been
thinking clearly. The revelation about Moss had shaken her and she had
acted rashly. If she didn't regain control of this situation she would
be in real trouble.


"Come in, sit down. We need to
talk,” said Margit. “You may leave us,”
she said to the soldiers. They lifted their hands off Venera's
shoulders and retreated past the heavy oak door. They would have a long
walk down the winding steps that led down to Liris's ground floor. Good,
thought Venera.


She sat down on a
decadent-looking divan, but she kept her feet braced against the floor,
ready to leap up instantly if that was required.


The first step to taking control
of the situation was taking control of the conversation. Margit opened
her mouth, but Venera spoke first: “What is an heir of Sacrus
doing running a minor nation like Liris?"


Margit narrowed her eyes.
“Shouldn't I be asking the questions? Besides, what's your
interest?” she asked as she gracefully sat opposite Venera.
“Professional curiosity, perhaps? You are a noble daughter
yourself, are you not? A nation like Liris would be an interesting
playground for someone learning how to use power. Are you interested in
rulership?"


"In the abstract,” said
Venera. “It's not an ambition of mine."


"Neither is assisting your new
countrymen, I gather. You were trying to escape us."


"Of course I was. I was
press-ganged into your service. And you admit yourself you expected me
to try it.” She shrugged. “So what could we
possibly have to talk about?"


"A great deal,
actually,” said Margit. “Such as how you came to be
here at all."


Venera nodded slowly. She had
been thinking about that, and the conclusions she had come to had
motivated her to run as much as the facts about Moss. “I
arrived here through an odd chain of events,” she said.
“At the time I wasn't prepared to wonder why there were armed
troops sneaking over the lawns of Spyre during the nighttime. I was
mostly concerned with evading them. But they pursued me here. Why here?
At the time, I didn't know enough to even ask the question."


Margit raised an eyebrow and sat
back.


"It's my father, you
see,” said Venera in a confessional tone. “He's
flagrantly paranoid, and he wanted his daughters to be as well. He
raised me to disbelieve coincidence. So if I was herded
here, what could the reason be? The troops who were following me
weren't from Liris. In fact, I assumed they weren't after me at all,
but were chasing down another trespasser whom I had met. It wasn't
until today that I realized that those other soldiers had been from
Sacrus."


Margit laughed. “That
truly is paranoid. You would implicate my nation in every one of your
misfortunes?"


"No, just this one.”
She sat forward. “Since we're talking, though, I'd like to
ask you a couple of questions.” Smiling her maddening smile,
Margit nodded. “The first question is whether you maintain
constant contact with your nation. I've been told you don't, but I
don't believe that."


Margit shrugged. “It
would be easy. So what if I did? Can't a daughter talk to her parents?"


"The second question,”
said Venera, “is whether Sacrus itself travels regularly into
the principalities.” Seeing Margit's suddenly guarded
expression, Venera nodded. “You do, don't you?"


"So what?"


"Someone guessed where I had come
from,” marveled Venera. “More than likely the
Gehellens have circulated descriptions of myself and my husband
throughout the principalities. They seek us, and it's an open secret
why."


Margit grinned in obvious
delight. “Oh, you are smart! I was right to bring you into
Liris in the way I did."


Venera cocked her head.
“What other way was there?"


"Oh, I think you can guess."


"Under duress.
Tortured,” said Venera. “Why do you think I tried
to flee just now? It suddenly made no sense to me that I was walking
around freely. And your offer to let me travel outside Spyre ... made
even less sense."


"You became alarmed. That's
understandable. I was told to learn everything you know about the Key
to Candesce,” said Margit. “You figured that out,
of course."


Venera looked innocent.
“Sorry, the what?"


Margit stood up and paced over to
a side table. “Drink?” Venera shook her head.


"Something happened a short time
ago,” said the botanist. She stood with her back to Venera,
and in those seconds Venera looked around quickly for anything that
might give her an advantage. There were no handy hat-pins, letter
openers, or pistols lying on the pillowed furniture. She did spot a
battered wooden cabinet that looked markedly out of place compared to
the rest of the pieces, but had no time to get to it before Margit
turned again, drink in hand.


"Something happened,”
Margit repeated, “a fight in the capital of Gehellen, rumors
of a stolen treasure, and then an event that our scientists are
starting to refer to as the outage."


Venera tensed. She hadn't
expected Margit to know this part of the story.


"Candesce does many things
besides light our skies,” said the botanist. “We
watch the sun of suns closely; we have to, our very lives depend on it.
So when one of Candesce's many systems shuts down, even for a moment,
we know about it. Even though such an event has not occurred in living
memory."


She sat down again.
“Only someone with a key could enter Candesce and manipulate
it. And the last key was lost centuries ago. You can imagine the uproar
that the outage has caused, here and abroad. The principalities are
mobilizing, and agents of the Virga Home Guard have been seen nosing
around, even here."


Home guard?
Venera had never heard of them. But she wanted to kick herself for
failing to realize that the gambit she and her husband had played would
alert all the powers in the world. Hit another trip wire,
she mused.


"It was only a matter of days
before we had your name and description and that of your husband and
others in your party,” said Margit. “We pay our
spies well. So when a woman fitting that description miraculously
appeared in the skies of Greater Spyre, we acted."


"Clearly, I've been a
fool,” said Venera bitterly. “Then it was Sacrus
troops who drove me here?"


"I actually don't know for
sure,” Margit admitted. “Our men were out that
night, I know that much. But there may have been others as well. In any
case, once I communicated that I had you, I was told to hand you and
the key over. I couldn't very well refuse my masters the
key—but you, I declined to part with."


Venera felt a pulse of anxious
anger as she realized what Margit was saying. “Then the key
is—"


"Locked away in the Gray
Infirmary, where Sacrus keeps all their new acquisitions,”
said Margit with some smugness. She drained her wineglass and tilted it
at Venera. “But you're here. I took Liris in order to have a
base from which to grow my own power. You provide potential leverage.
Why should I give you up?"


"And the offer to let me travel
... ?"


"I increase my leverage and buy
some insurance by getting you out of Spyre and to a safe place that
only I know about,” said Margit. “But you should
really be happy that I haven't tortured you for what you know. I'd
prefer to have you on my side. You must admit, I've treated you well."


Cautiously, Venera nodded.
“It was too risky to keep the key to Candesce for yourself.
But a lesser piece of leverage..."


"...Who knows something vital
about it that I can trade ... that's useful to me at the
moment.” Margit smiled, catlike.


It still didn't quite add up.
“Why did you let me go up to Lesser Spyre?” Venera
asked. “Why risk exposing me at the fair?"


"That was to prove that I had
you,” said Margit with a shrug. “While I was
negotiating what to give up. Sacrus was at the fair. I told them to
watch for you, but with the guards and defenses that surround the fair,
they couldn't snatch you from me. It was the safest place in Spyre to
display you."


Someone unused to being used as a
political pawn might have been surprised at these revelations. For
Venera, discovering that she had been played was almost reassuring. It
placed her in a familiar role.


She knew exactly what Sacrus was
going to do now. Venera had fantasized about it herself: you took the
key and entered Candesce, and then shut down the sun of suns. As the
darkness and cold began to seep into the principalities, you made your
demands of the millions whose lives depended on Candesce. You could ask
for anything—power, money, hostages, or slaves. Your leverage
would be total.


It would help to have enough
experienced men to crew a navy, though, because one of your first
demands would be that the principalities deliver up their own ships.
“Sacrus doesn't have any ships, do they?” she
asked. “Surely not enough to run the blockade that the
principalities would put in place."


Margit shrugged. “Oh,
we have several. Sacrus is a big nation. But in terms of
weapons...” She laughed, and it wasn't a pleasant laugh.
“I doubt we would have to worry much about any fleet of the
principalities."


Her confidence was suddenly
unnerving. Margit sauntered over to the battered wooden cabinet and
opened the top. “Since you're here,” she said,
“let's talk about the key to Candesce."


"Let's not.” Venera
stood up. “My knowledge is my only bargaining chip, after
all. I'm not going to squander that."


This time Margit didn't answer.
She pulled a bell-rope that hung next to the cabinet.


The gravity was low enough and
Venera still strong enough that she could probably make it to the
window in one leap. Then she could scale the stonework by the tips of
her fingers if she had to and make it to the roof in under a minute.
Not, however, faster than the soldiers could climb a flight of stairs
to retrieve her.


Margit was watching her calculate
her options. The botanist laughed as the door opened behind Venera and
a large, heavily armored soldier entered.


"I'm not going to hurt
you,” said Margit. Something glittered in her hand as she
approached Venera. “I just want to guarantee your compliance
from now on."


"The way you tried with
Moss?” Venera nodded at the syringe Margit held.
“Is that the same stuff you used on him?"


"It is. His outcome was an
accident,” said the botanist as the soldier stepped forward
and grabbed Venera's wrists from behind. “I'll be more
careful with you."


His outcome was an
accident. Venera was familiar with that sort of logic, she
often blamed others for the things she did to them. For some reason,
the argument didn't work this time.


Margit had to round a large couch
as she approached Venera. She took a step to do so, and Venera made
fists, bent her forearms forward, and then raised her arms in an
egg-shaped curve that Chaison had once showed her. The startled soldier
clung tightly to her wrists but suddenly found himself pulled forward
and off balance as Venera lifted his hands over her head. And then she
turned and her hands were over his as he lost his grip, and she pushed
down and he thumped onto his knees.


She kicked him in the face. His
helmet ricocheted across the room as Margit shouted, and Venera hopped
the couch, snatching up the open wine bottle and swinging it at the
botanist's head.


Margit slashed out with the
syringe, nicking Venera's sleeve. They circled for a second and then
Venera grabbed for her wrist and they tumbled onto the floor.


The wine bottle skittered away,
gouting red. Venera pulled Margit's arm up and bit her wrist. As the
botanist let go Venera made a grab for the syringe. Margit in turn
lunged for the bottle.


"I was just going to kill
you,” hissed Venera. She landed on Margit's back as the
botanist closed her fingers on the bottle. “I've changed my
mind!” She jammed the needle into Margit's shoulder and
pushed the plunger.


Margit shrieked and rolled away.
Venera let her. The botanist had let go of the wine bottle, and Venera
took it and upended it over the wooden cabinet.


Cursing and holding her shoulder,
Margit ran over to the soldier, who was sitting up. When she saw Venera
reach for one of the lit candles she screamed “No!”
and backpedaled.


It was too late, as Venera
touched the candle flame to the wine-soaked cabinet and the whole thing
caught. In the orange light of the fire, Venera ran through a nearby
arch. She wanted to know whether that cabinet was all there was to
Margit's power.


"Ah...” She stood in a
large private pharmacy—dozens of shelves covered in glass
bottles of all sizes and colors hung above long work tables crowded
with beakers, petri dishes, and test tubes. Venera joyfully swept her
arm across a table and tossed the candle into the cascading glasswork
as Margit clawed at her from behind.


There was fire behind them, now
fire ahead and smoke wafting up to the ceiling as Margit pushed and
kicked at Venera and tried to get past her. When the soldier finally
appeared out of the smoke, Venera stood over the botanist, her nose
bleeding but a grin of utter savagery on her face. She brandished a
long knife she'd found on the table.


"Back away or I'll cut her
throat!” Venera's backdrop was flames. The soldier backed
away.


Shouts of alarm and clanging
bells were waking the house. Venera dragged Margit out of the inferno
and threw her to the floor in front of the smoldering cabinet.


"Ten days.” She pointed
to the door. “You have ten days to convince your people to
save you. I have no doubt that Sacrus has the antidote to your poison,
but you'll have to go to them on bended knee to get it. For your sake I
hope they're in a forgiving mood."


People were crowding in the
doorway—men and women carrying buckets of sand and water, all
shouting at once and all clattering to a halt at the sight of Venera
standing over the all-powerful botanist.


"You are no longer the botanist
of Liris!” Venera raised her arm, summoning everything she
had learned from her father about how to intimidate a crowd.
“Let no one here ever grant entry to this woman again! Run!
Run home to Sacrus and beg for your life. This place is closed to you."


Margit staggered to her feet,
clutching her shoulder. “I'll kill you!” she hissed.


"Only if you've a mind to do
it,” said Venera. “Now go!"


The botanist ran for the door,
pushing aside the stunned firefighters.


"Get with it!” Venera
yelled at them. “Before the whole house goes up!"


She walked through them, and as
more came up the stairs, she politely eased to the side to let them
pass. She reached the main floor of Liris to find all the lights lit
and a confused mob swirling around the strangely decorated desks and
counters.


"What's happened?”
Odess emerged from the rush of faces. The rest of the trade delegation
was behind him.


"I've deposed the
botanist,” said Venera. They gaped at her. She sighed.
“It wasn't that hard,” she said.


"But—but
how?” They crowded around her.


"But why?"
Eilen had grabbed her arm.


Venera looked up at her. Suddenly
she felt tears in her eyes.


"My ... my husband,”
she whispered through a suddenly tight throat. “My husband is
dead."


For a while there was silence, it
seemed, though Venera knew abstractly that everyone was shouting, that
the news of Margit's sudden departure was spreading like fire through
Liris. Eilen and the others were speaking to her, but she couldn't
understand anything they said.


Strangely calm, she looked
through the rushing people at the one other person who seemed still. He
was giving orders at the foot of the stairs to Margit's chambers,
putting out his arm to prevent people without firefighting tools from
going up, pointing out where to get sand or buckets to those just
arriving. His face was impassive, but his gestures were quick and
focused.


"What are we going to
do?” Odess was literally wringing his hands, something Venera
had never actually seen someone do. “Without the botanist,
what will happen to the trees? Will Sacrus forgive us for what you did?
We could all be killed. Who is going to lead us now?"


Eilen turned to Odess, shaking
his shoulder crossly. “Why shouldn't it be Venera?"


"V-Venera?” He looked
terrified.


She laughed. “I'm
leaving. Right now. Besides, you already have your new
botanist.” She pointed. “He's been here all along."


Moss looked up from where he was
directing the firefighting. He saw Venera, and the perpetually
desperate expression around his eyes softened a bit. She walked over to
him.


As shouts came down the stairs
saying that the fire was under control, she laid a hand on the former
envoy's arm and smiled at him. “Moss,” she said,
“I don't want you to be sad anymore."


"I-I'll t-try,” he said.


Satisfied, she turned away from
the people of Liris. Venera traced the steps Margit had taken only
minutes before, pausing only to arm herself in Liris's barracks. She
walked up the broad stone steps over which towered row after row of
portraits—centuries of botanists, masons, doctors, and
scholars, all of whom had been born here, lived here, and died here
leaving legacies that might have been known only to a handful of
people, but were meaningful nonetheless. She trod carefully patched
steps whose outlines were known intimately by those who tended them,
past arches and doors that figured as clearly as heroes out of myth in
the dreams and ambitions of the people who lived under
them—people to whom they were the very world itself.


And on the dark empty roof, cold
fresh air blew in from the abandoned lofts of Winter.


She threw back the trapdoor and
stalked to the roof's edge. These were the final steps of her old life,
she felt. Venera was about to mourn, something she had never done and
did not know how to do. She stepped onto a swaying platform and began
winching it down, feeling the uncoiling certainty of her husband's
death in her gut. It was like a monster shaking itself awake; any
moment now it would devour her, and who knew what would happen then?
Her only defense was to keep turning the wheel to winch herself down.
She focused her eyes on the tall grass that swayed at the foot of
Liris, willing it closer.


In the dim light cast by Lesser
Spyre, Venera Fanning walked into the wild acres of the disputed
territories. She moved aimlessly at first, admiring the glittering
lights overhead and the vast arcs of land and forest that swept up and
past them.


When she lowered her eyes it was
to see the black silhouette of a man separate itself from a grove of
trees ahead of her. Venera didn't pause, but turned slightly towards
the figure. He came out to meet her, and she nodded to him when he
offered his arm for her to lean on.


"I've been waiting for
you,” said Garth Diamandis.


They walked into the darkness
under the trees.


To be continued.



Copyright (c) 2006 Karl Schroeder


[Back to Table of Contents]









SCIENCE FACT:
TOWARD A NOT-JUST-DIAMOND AGE by Stephen L. Gillett, Ph.D.


The Diamond Age.” Not
only was it the title of a Neil Stephenson SF novel a few years back,
it's even become a cliche, shorthand for the dawning era of
nanotechnology.


Of course, we know why: Diamond
is the hard, rigid but light form of carbon; and carbon is The Ultimate
Nanotechnological Material. It has one of the highest specific
strengths—strength-to-mass ratios—known: Four of
its six electrons are available for bonding, so the nuclear
“dead weight"—the protons and their associated
neutrons—is minimized. The ugly word
“diamondoid” has even come into vogue to describe
molecular frameworks and structures based on the diamond structure.


Diamond, even on its own terms,
may be just a bit overblown, though. At least for macroscopic
applications, composites based on carbon
nanotubes—"buckytubes"—are probably better. They're
likely to be just as strong as—even stronger, in applications
involving cables or filaments—than diamond, and they're
likely to be considerably easier to fabricate.


But they're still carbon, right?
Still The Ultimate Material. Once we achieve full-blown—or
even partial-blown—nanotechnology, there won't be any reason
to use anything else!


Actually, there probably will be.
Oh, sure, there's no question things like a skystalk to geosynchronous
orbit will be carbon based. Specific strength iseverything
in some applications.


But carbon has some serious
disadvantages. For one thing, it burns.
Particularly when it's in the form of fine particles. Even at ordinary
temperatures, aerosols of things like coal dust are explosive. This is
one of the many hazards in underground coal mining. Recent research has
shown a coal-dust explosion probably also sent the British liner Lusitania
to the bottom in 1915. It was torpedoed by a German U-boat, but the
ship was ripped open by a much larger explosion some seconds after
the torpedo impact. Rather than from contraband munitions, then and
since a widespread speculation, this subsequent explosion seems to have
resulted from coal dust raised in the liner's nearly empty bunkers by
the initial concussion.


Applications that envision clouds
of free-floating nanobots, such as J. Storrs Hall's “Utility
Fog,” will haveto be made out of
nonflammable materials. A carbon-based utility fog would be a dandy
fuel-air explosive. And that's just one example—flammability
is going to be a major concern in lots of other cases, too. As we'll
see, inert molecular frameworks that are immune to oxygen are easy to
build with other materials than carbon, and those frameworks have a
host of potential applications.


But non-flammability is not the
end of the story by any means. For all the paeans to carbon, other
elements can form frameworks that look to have
extraordinary—and extraordinarily useful—physical
properties, for nanoelectronics, catalysis, element separation,
“programmable” matter, and a host of other
applications.


* * * *


The Not-so-Close Cousin



What about alternatives to
carbon, then? Silicon (Si) immediately comes to mind. After all,
everyone (or at least everyone who reads Analog)
knows that silicon is the chemical cousin of carbon, occurring
immediately below it in the Periodic Table. That's, of course, also the
inspiration for the old chestnut about silicon-based life.


However, the chemistry of silicon
and carbon is really quite different, as I've described previously
("Diamond Ether, Nanotechnology, and Venus,” Nov. 1999).
Elemental Si, to be sure, has the diamond structure, but
silicon-silicon bonds are not so strong as carbon-carbon bonds (Table
1), and with the extra mass of the Si atom, the specific strength is
much less. Silicon also has little tendency to form the double bonds so
characteristic of carbon, whose formation, indeed, largely definesthe
enormous variety of organic chemistry. Because of this, for example,
silicon can form no analog of the hexagonal
carbon—"graphene"—sheets that make up buckytube
walls. The striking contrast in chemistry arises largely from the
difference in size of the two atoms. The
“orbitals,” the places where the unshared electrons
responsible for bonding are localized, can overlap a great deal between
adjacent carbon atoms to form a second or even a third chemical bond.
The silicon atom is simply too big for that to happen.


* * * *


Table 1. Bond
Energies, Si and C


——-


Si


kJ/mol


-Si


322


——-


Si


kJ/mol


-O


535


——-


Si


kJ/mol


=O





——-


Si


kJ/mol


-C


372


——-


Si


aJ


-Si


0.535


——-


Si


aJ


-O


0.889


——-


Si


aJ


=O





——-


Si


aJ


-C


0.618


——-


C


kJ/mol


-Si


372


——-


C


kJ/mol


-O


346


——-


C


kJ/mol


=O


808


——-


C


kJ/mol


-C


335


——-


C


aJ


-Si


0.618


——-


C


aJ


-O


0.575


——-


C


aJ


=O


1.343


——-


C


aJ


-C


0.556


——-


Table 1.
Important Si and C bond energies. They are given both in kilojoules per
mole (kJ/mol) and in attojoules (10-18 joules).


* * * *


A more promising idea looks not
at siliconbut silicates,
compounds of silicon and oxygen with other elements. The silicon-oxygen
bond is strong (Table 1). At ordinary pressures, silicon can form four
(single) bonds with surrounding oxygens to form a tetrahedron, the
“silicate tetrahedron,” a strong, compact unit that
is the fundamental building block of silicate chemistry.


Some silicates, such as the
mineral olivine, (Mg,Fe)2SiO4, contain the isolated SiO4 tetrahedron.
In such minerals it's a negatively charged ion ("anion"), with four
extra electrons: SiO44. The metal atoms are positive ions ("cations"),
each having lost two electrons. The metal cations and silicate anion
then stack alternately to make up the structure. The whole business is
a so-called “ionic crystal,” which sticks together
just because of the simple electrostatic attraction between the cations
and anions. It's just like a host of other ionic salts like sodium
chloride—or better, like other oxyanion salts like sodium
sulfate (Na2SO4), where the sulfate anion acts like a single unit, too.


If this were all there was to
silicates, their chemistry would be pretty dull. The real variety comes
from the fact that the tetrahedra can share corners to make a disiloxy
bond (Si-O-Si), in which an oxygen links two silicons. Although it is
single, this bond is not only strong, it's partly covalent.That
is, it results from a quantum-mechanical blending of the orbitals, not
merely from electrostatic attraction between an oxygen anion and a
silicon cation. Because of the covalency, the bond is resistant to shear,
or bending, as well as to extension.


If each tetrahedron shares two
corners, a chain structure results. The pyroxene[1]
minerals have such a structure (Figure 1a), and the remaining negative
charges on the chains are canceled by metal ions stacked between the
chains. Two common pyroxenes are enstatite, MgSiO3, and diopside,
CaMgSi2O6. Double-chain structures, consisting of two parallel single
chains in which every other tetrahedron shares a third oxygen with the
adjacent chain, are basic to the amphiboles,
another widespread group of minerals (Figure 1b). Hornblende is an
example of this group.


[Footnote 1: Pronounced
“PEER-ux-een” by geologists and mineralogists, by
the way.]


The silicones
(or, more properly, “siloxanes") are a technological version
of a silicon-oxygen chain structure. In this case, instead of
negatively charged chains with intercalated metal ions, organic side
groups such as methyl (CH3) groups are attached to the chains in place
of the unshared oxygens. A simple silicone is polydimethylsiloxane,
(CH3)2SiO.


And now you can see one reason
silicate backbones might be promising for nanotechnology!


But we don't need to stop there.
If three oxygens on everytetrahedron are shared, we
get an infinite sheet structure. These are also ubiquitous in the
natural world, making up the micas and clay minerals. The platy
structures of these minerals directly reflect their molecular
structure. They split ("cleave") easily along the plane of the sheets.
The micas, for example, can be visualized as having a layer of
tetrahedra all sitting on a face and sharing all three corners on that
face, while the unshared corner sticks up. Under scanning-probe
microscopes the layer has a hexagonal pattern that looks a bit like
chicken wire (Figure 1c). A corresponding tetrahedral sheet above has
all the unshared tetrahedra pointing down, and metal cations between
the tetrahedra cancel most of the negative charge. So it's kind of a
“sandwich” structure.


There's a bit of negative charge
left over, though, and big cations between the
“sandwiches” cancel it. They're usually potassium
cations in natural minerals, and they tuck into those hexagonal holes.


This plane of weakness, where the
potassium cations hold the sheets together, is where the cleavage
occurs. In fact, carefully cleaved mica sheets are actually atomically
flat over distances of millimeters, even centimeters. That is, the
surface of the very same(!) silicate sheet is exposed over macroscopic
distances. This extraordinary phenomenon has been exploited in surface
science studies for years, and the atomically perfect surfaces are an
obvious basis for studies in protonanotechnology. In fact, they're
being used a lot.


Sheet silicates are also the
basis of another bit of protonanotechnology. Those
cations-between-the-sheets ("interstitial” cations, to use
the formal name) can be swapped out for others to give materials that
can't be synthesized any other way. In particular, replacing the
potassium ions with big cations like tetrabutylammonium, (C4H9)4N+,
leads to so-called “pillared clays.” The larger
cations hold the sheets farther apart, like pillars. This creates
molecular-scale galleries into which other molecules can fit. These now
have a big literature largely because many make good catalysts, just as
with the zeolites described below.[2]


[Footnote 2: This is an example
of chimie douce (literally “soft
chemistry"), which is a burgeoning set of techniques in
protonanotechnology. Chimie douce implies
low-temperature techniques, such as swapping out mobile atoms or ions,
that generally leave the overall molecular structure intact. It lets
you make compounds that can't be synthesized directly.]


What happens when we share all
four corners of each silicate tetrahedron? We get an infinite
three-dimensional (3D) framework whose composition is simply that of
silica, silicon dioxide, or SiO2. Silica occurs in a number of
different structures, depending on how the tetrahedra are linked. The
most common form is quartz, but there are others (cristobalite,
coesite, etc.) One of the most interesting is an artificial form called
silicalite, in which the structure is so open that
it contains channels and tunnels into which other molecules can fit. In
fact, it's an aluminum-free zeolite, of which much more anon.


Note the stark contrast of SiO2
with its chemical cousin, carbon dioxide, CO2. Sure, the
stoichiometry—the ratio of the atoms—is the same,
but the structure is vastly different. CO2 is made of individual
molecules, each consisting of two oxygens double-bonded to a carbon in
the middle. It is not a 3D structure, at least under ordinary
conditions. Silicon, however, can't make those double bonds. So it's a
solid 3D framework.


Because of the corner-sharing of
silicate tetrahedra ("polymerization,” as chemists call it),
the chemistry of ordinary rocks eluded chemists and mineralogists until
the first half of the twentieth century. Not until X-ray techniques
were developed did the structures begin to be worked out, beginning in
the 1930s. That's one of the reasons that silicate chemistry is still
not well known outside the specialist communities, in fact. The new
discoveries didn't start hitting the mineralogy textbooks till after WW
II, and they're stillnot well described in many
chem texts. ( Ahem, any textbook writers listening?)


Natural silicate chemistry is
made even more complicated by ion substitution. The only thing that
really matters with the cations stuck between the negatively charged
anions is their size and charge. They don't have to be the same
element! So if two metal ions have the same charge and size, you can
mix ‘n’ match them in the crystal. Iron and
magnesium, for example, are both common elements, and the Mg+2 and Fe+2
ions are about the same size. They tend, therefore, to occur in the
same minerals—what a geochemist affectionately calls
“ferromags.” We saw this already above in olivine,
(Mg,Fe)2SiO4. This is also why many minerals tend not to have
well-defined chemical formulas, another reason that mineral chemistry
was such a puzzle until the first third of the twentieth century.


It also provides some inspiration
for nanotechnology, as we'll see.


As I noted a few paragraphs back,
if we hook up all four vertices of the tetrahedron we just get silica,
SiO2. It has its uses, of course. Very strong fibers that don't burn
are an obvious one, which Goodloe and Oltion used in
“Waterworld” (March 1994). In fact, strong,
nonflammable structures are an obvious application generally.
Silicates, of course, are brittle; consider the effect of dropping a
water glass onto a concrete floor! (Ordinary glass is a partly
polymerized silicate with no long-range atomic order.) As I've
described before ("Near-Term Nanotechnology,” Oct. 1998), and
has been pointed out repeatedly in the nanotech literature, though,
brittle materials are actually far stronger than metals. The problem is
that they're vulnerable to catastrophic failure ("Griffith failure") if
they're not atomically perfect. Nanotechnological assembly, of course,
aspires to that perfection.


Open silica frameworks could also
be handy as “molecular sieves,” literally
molecule-sized filters for straining certain molecules out of a
background of lots of others. In fact, I mentioned the present-day
existence of silicalite above, which has such an open framework.


But there's not a whole lot of
compositional variety!


There's nothing that says,
though, that we just have to put only silicon atoms
in the linked tetrahedra. Substitution doesn't just apply to the
interstitial metal cations. We can stick other atoms into those
tetrahedral sites; and when we do so, we can get a lot more variety.
And a lot more usefulness.


We can substitute aluminum atoms
into a fully linked tetrahedral silicate framework, for example. Since
aluminum has one fewer protons than silicon, the framework ends up with
an overall electrical charge: one negative for every aluminum atom
present. To cancel this charge, we need to stick metal cations into
holes in the framework. So we end up with 3D frameworks
("tectosilicates") that aren't justsilica, and that
furthermore can accommodate other cations as well.


Aluminum substitution is
ubiquitous in natural silicates because aluminum is the third most
abundant element in the crust, after oxygen and silicon themselves. In
fact, geochemists refer to “aluminosilicates,”
combined silicon-aluminum framework minerals. One group of these
minerals, the feldspars, are the most abundant chemical compounds in
the crust. Potassium feldspar (affectionately called
“K-spar” by a couple of generations of students),
for example, has the formula KAlSi3O8. “K” (from
German Kalium) is, of course, the chemical symbol
for potassium. Since the potassium cation has one
“plus” charge while aluminum has three, they
exactly compensate for the replaced framework silicon.


Feldspars and quartz, the common,
stable form of silica, are the characteristic minerals of granite.
Since granite-like rocks largely make up the continents, feldspars are
hardly unimportant—but even so, they're not the most
promising candidates for a nanotechnology.


Other aluminosilicates are much
more interesting. These are the zeolites,aluminosilicates with very
open frameworks into which other molecules can fit. The name comes from
the Greek for “boiling stone,” and it was bestowed
in the eighteenth (!) century. In natural zeolites, the frameworks
contain water in the voids, and when you heat them up the water fizzes
out spectacularly.


Zeolites are an excellent example
of present protonanotechnology. They're used by the ton for catalysis,
particularly in the petrochemical industry. Catalysts, of course, are
substances that make a chemical reaction happen more easily. Zeolites
can be highly selective catalysts, because only molecules that can fit
into the molecular voids will react. In fact, in their sheer
specificity they've been compared to biological enzymes!


Another application that seems
set to burgeon is their use as “molecular sieves”
for separation. They're already extensively used as drying agents, as
H2O is readily taken up in the voids. The zeolite can then be
regenerated for further use simply by heating.


A dawning prospect is
“ionic conductors” or “solid
electrolytes,” which are substances that can conduct a flow
of cations. Obviously, they must have open structures so that ions can
move from point to point! Solid electrolytes will be critical for
practical fuel cells. A fuel cell is basically a battery in which both
the substance that gives up electrons (is “oxidized"[3]) and
the one that accepts electrons (is “reduced") can be
continuously replenished. Instead of the reactive metals familiar in
ordinary batteries, then, we can—at least in
theory—use stuff we're more used to thinking of as
“fuels,” like methane or alcohols. This would be
far more efficient than simply burning them! (Fuel cells don't haveto
use hydrogen. Hydrogen is just the easiest with
current technology. That's a very different statement!) Like any
battery, though, a fuel cell has to have a cation flow within it to
compensate for the external electron flow, and solid electrolytes would
be ideal. If we could synthesize good ones, anyway.


[Footnote 3: Oxygen is a good
electron acceptor—hence the name
“oxidation"—but it isn't the only one. There are
better oxidizers than oxygen!]


Another embryonic application of
zeolites is as a molecular framework support. Using chimiedoucetechniques
new ions, and even clusters of atoms, can be introduced into the
zeolite framework. For one example, silver ions can be introduced into
a zeolite framework to make promising photocatalysts for synthesizing
fuels by splitting water with sunlight (see “Artificial
Photosynthesis,” April 2005). This combination of silver ions
and zeolite framework has vastly different properties from either alone.


Of course, technology isn't
restricted to the element substitutions that occur in nature. All sorts
of other atoms have been stuck into zeolite frameworks. Boron,
phosphorus, iron, gallium, tin, indium, titanium ... it's a long list.
This hasn't been just golly-gee-whiz academic research, either. The big
motivator is better catalysts, a market of hundreds of millions of
dollars.


In fact, the substitution can
become so extensive that there's no silicon left! The rare mineral
berlinite, one form of aluminum phosphate (AlPO4), has the same
structure as quartz. You can think of berlinite as derived from quartz
by replacing silicon atoms alternately by aluminum and phosphorus
atoms. Since the charge on the aluminum atom is +3 while that on
phosphorus is +5, they exactly compensate for two silicons each with a
+4 charge.


Other metal phosphates also make
3D frameworks. Titanium and zirconium, in particular, form 3D framework
structures. They've attracted some attention for carrying out
separation, but with current “shake and bake”
synthesis techniques, the crystals are far too tiny to do all the
things we'd like.


But all this leads to considering
framework-forming elements besides silicon, which I'll turn to in the
next section.


I can't leave this section,
though, without a note on the sheer abundance of silicates. They make
up most of a rocky planet—they make up most of rock!
So raw materials are hardly hard to come by. In fact, the leftovers
from conventional mining operations—those great piles of
unsightly and environmentally obnoxious dirt—are largely
silicates.


How do you deal with them? Well,
in conventional extractive metallurgy you largely don't. Most ore
minerals are more amenable compounds like sulfides and oxides. That's
how you ended up with all that silicate waste, in fact, separating out
these ore minerals. But in recent years, with the interest in
extracting materials from lunar regolith, there's been some research
into how you might go about processing silicates.


With great difficulty, in current
concepts: Proposed processes require seriously nasty reagents like
hydrofluoric acid (HF) or free elemental fluorine to break up
silicates. Fluorine compounds are capable of displacing oxygen from
silicates; not much else is. (HF is used to etch glass.) And having
tons of fluorine or HF lying around would be a profound hazard for a
lunar base.


Remarkably, however, there are
alternatives to HF. Certain organic(!) reagents are capable of
dissolving silicates. An example is catechol (1-2
dihydroxybenzene, Figure 2). The two oxygen atoms are just the right
distance apart to glom onto a silicon atom, and three catechols fit
nicely around the atom. Ethylene glycol, C2H4(OH)2, better known as the
active ingredient in antifreeze, is also capable of reacting with
silicates. An alkaline “cocktail” containing
ethylene glycol can even dissolve beach sand.


"Digesting” silicate
raw materials with such reagents is already being investigated for
zeolite synthesis. Another driver is “sol-gel”
applications, in which a suspension of nanoparticles (a
“sol") is condensed into a gelatinous mass (a
“gel") and thence into a low-temperature glass. It's really
another example of chimie douce, because by working
at low temperatures—even in aqueous solution!—it
lets you synthesize structures that can't be obtained by melting, which
of course is the usual way to get a glass.


Using such processing to get
nanotechnological raw materials instead scarcely seems a big step.


* * * *


Electrons, Bronzes,
and Tungsten


Tungsten is much better known as
a tough, hard, high-melting metal, the material of lightbulb filaments
and high-performance alloys—"tungsten steel.” In
fact, it was so important in WW II that tungsten (chemical symbol
“W,” from German Wolfram, by
the way) mining was heavily subsidized by Uncle Sam.[4]


[Footnote 4: Tungsten prospects
dot the American West; if you see a pit dug out at the contact between
a granite and a limestone, it's most probably for tungsten. The main
ore mineral for tungsten is scheelite, “calcium
tungstate,” CaWO4. It forms when tungsten-bearing fluids come
off the cooling granite to react with calcium from the limestone.
Scheelite is fluorescent in ultraviolet (UV) light: Tungsten
prospectors traditionally go out at night and shine UV lights on the
ground!]


Future nano-engineers, though,
will regard those properties as quaint. They will be much more
interested in the fact that tungsten can build molecular frameworks
with oxygen that are even more versatile than silicon's.


Why are they not just an exotic
(and expensive) variation on a more prosaic oxide molecular framework?
We have to look at the electronic structure of tungsten to see why.
Tungsten is a “transition metal,” one of the
elements in the part of the Periodic Table where the delectron
shell is being filled. Most of these elements (and yes, they're all
metals) have two electrons in the outer s electron
shell[5], and those always participate in chemical bonding. One or more
of the d electrons may also participate in bonding,
too, though, depending on the chemical environment.


[Footnote 5: The exceptions are
copper, silver, and gold, which have only one selectron.
Instead of having nine electrons in the dshell and
two in the sshell, they have a full dshell
of 10 electrons. This single, outer electron, by the way, is why these
metals are such good electrical conductors.]


Tungsten provides an excellent
example. All oxidation states of tungsten from +2 (no delectrons
involved) to +6 (all 4 delectrons involved) are
known in one compound or another.


Carbon, silicon, aluminum,
phosphorus, boron, and so on, however, are all “main
group” elements. Usually, the sand p
electron shells are used in bonding, and all at once. For heavier main
group elements, there are often different oxidation states separated by
twoelectrons, as (say) with arsenic, which has +3
and +5 oxidation states. But different oxidation states separated by
just one electron don't exist (at ordinary temperatures, anyway[6]). Of
course, I mentioned that transition metals such as iron have been
substituted into zeolite frameworks, but only as isolated atoms. They
don't make up the whole structure, and they don't change its electronic
properties appreciably.


[Footnote 6: Things like aluminum
monoxide, AlO, where aluminum has a +2 oxidation state]


Let's look at tungsten trioxide,
WO3, a light green, typically nonmetallic oxide. It's based on what
crystal chemists call the perovskite structure
(Figure 3), which is named after (yes!) the mineral perovskite,
CaTiO3.[7] Inside each octahedron is a tungsten atom, while oxygen
atoms lie at the corners. Note that each oxygen is shared. WO3 is a
wide-bandgap semiconductor. That means it contains a lower energy
“valence band” containing all the electrons. Then
there's an energy gap between this band and the higher-energy
“conduction band,” which is empty. (These bands
result from blending all the orbitals on the individual atoms.) Because
the bandgap is “wide,” it's almost an insulator, in
fact. Few electrons have enough energy to jump up to the conduction
band. That's why it looks like such a typical non-metallic compound.


[Footnote 7: Which indeed has
this structure. The titanium atoms are in the centers of the octahedra,
while the big calcium cations sit in the big holes.]


By a variety of methods, though,
you can synthesize a compound that's almosttungsten
trioxide, except that it has a small (and varying) amount of sodium
(Na) in it. Its formula varies from about Na0.32WO3 to Na0.93WO3.


And it looks nothing like
tungsten trioxide. It looks metallic, in fact, shiny and golden
colored, although it's still brittle. It's even a good electrical
conductor!


This was the first example of
what are now called tungsten bronzes, because of
the luster and color of this prototype. “Bronzes”
have now been synthesized with many other elements in place of sodium:
other alkali metals (potassium, lithium, rubidium), copper, silver,
thallium, rare-earth elements ... Although not all are bronze-colored,
they all have this curious combination of metallic luster and
conductivity with a brittle, non-metallic texture.


What's going on?


Modern studies by X-ray
diffraction have shown that these bronzes basically consist of a WO3
structure in which some of the big open sites are filled with the other
metal atoms. Those atoms are cations, so to keep charge balance, some
of the tungsten atoms are now in the +5 oxidation state. That means
there's now an extra electron kicking around in the crystal, and it has
to go into the conduction band, since the valence band is full. There
it's free to travel, which yields typical metallic behavior.


So just by sticking a few extra
atoms into this structure, we've changed it from a semiconductor to a
metallic conductor. You can't do that with a carbon or silicate
structure!


These oxide
“metals” are already finding protonanotechnological
applications. The energy it takes to remove an electron from a bronze
(the “work function,” as physicists say) turns out
to be a very strong function of its chemical environment. This makes
them valuable as exquisitely sensitive chemical sensors.


There's more, though. What if we
can swap ions in and out of the WO3 structure on command? That would
shift it from the metal-like bronze form to a near-insulator. It turns
out we can, at least to some degree. Make a tungsten trioxide film on
an electrode, stick it in an acidic solution, and apply a negative
potential to it. Hydrogen ions released by the acid, which are very
small, can be drawn into WO3, upon which it will turn shiny and
bronze-like. This even works with the larger (though still small)
lithium ion.


Reversible bronze formation,
driven by an electric potential, is one basis of so-called
“electrochromic” systems: They change color on
application of an electric field. In this case, the material changes
from transparent to reflective. An SF cliche is windows that can be
“opaqued” on command. ("Window, dark!") We now see
how to do that, at least conceptually. Use a
“sandwich” consisting of a thin layer of WO3 over a
thin layer containing mobile lithium ion on top of the glass.
Application of a potential to the WO3 then turns it into a reflective
layer. (Of course, the web of invisibly thin wiring needed to provide
the potential remains a bit of an engineering challenge at present.)
Electrochromic materials have also been proposed for information
storage, and seem particularly appropriate for light-based
“optronic” systems, if they ever prove practical.


Electrochromic systems provide
one approach to self-darkening windows, too. Put a
nano-thin layer of transparent oxide semiconductor atop the WO3 layer.
Absorption of invisible ultraviolet light excites electrons in thatsemiconductor
up into the conduction band, where they apply the negative potential to
the WO3. This is an example of a nanotechnological
“photochromic” system, a system that changes color
on being illuminated.


Of course, now that we're again
talking about moving ions in and out of a molecular framework, solid
electrolytes become another obvious application. Even extraction of
ions from solution for purification or desalination is a possibility.
It's yet another possible “switchable” molecular
separator (see “Pollution, Solutions, Elution—and
Nanotechnology,” Jan-Feb. 2006.)


Other metals, too, have now been
shown to form “bronze-like” compounds. As you might
expect, molybdenum—the element above tungsten in the Periodic
Table—forms bronzes, too. But we can now even speak of
“titanium bronzes” and “vanadium
bronzes” and “tantalum bronzes” and so
on. In detail, the structures aren't the same as the tungsten bronzes,
but they're all 3D frameworks with big holes in which
“extraneous” cations reside, and they all have
metallic properties. Furthermore, as we've seen for tungsten,
most—but not all—of the framework metal atoms are
in their highest oxidation state.


Why do just these metals form
bronzes? They're all “early” transition
metals—that is, they have relatively few delectrons.
That's necessary so that the atom has lost all its delectrons
in the highest oxidation state. If there are too many delectrons,
they can't allbe lost—it simply costs too
much energy. And the remaining electrons get in the way. They take up
orbitals that could otherwise be used for bonding. And yet, even having
lost all its electrons, the atom's orbitals still have to extend out
enough that they can blend into a valence band. For example, chromium
(Cr), the lightest member of the tungsten group, does notform
bronzes. In its highest oxidation state it forms compact molecular
structures instead. The smaller Cr atom just holds onto the electrons
too tightly.


* * * *


Between the sheets...



I mentioned the micas and clays
above—silicate sheet structures with an overall negative
charge held together weakly with big cations like potassium. Even more
strikingly, it turns out that certain metal oxides can make sheet
structures with an overall positive charge, and the
sheets are held together with anions—nearly always carbonate
(CO3=), in natural systems. These “layered double
hydroxides” (LDHs) generally have the generic formula
X6Y2(OH)16CO3.4H2O, where X is a metal in the +2 oxidation state
(magnesium, iron, nickel, and so forth), and Y is a +3 metal (aluminum,
iron, chromium, manganese, etc.). Note the metals aren't necessarily
transition metals, although they can be. The prototype member is
hydrotalcite, Mg6Al2(OH)16CO3.4H2O. A very interesting member is
“green rust,” Fe6Fe2(OH)16CO3.4H2O, which contains
iron (Fe) in both its +2 and +3 oxidation states. It's a common
corrosion product in weakly oxidizing environments, but turns into
ordinary orange rust very quickly on direct exposure to air. For this
reason its very existence wasn't even well documented until fairly
recently.


It's more difficult, but just as
the interstitial cations in silicate clays can be swapped out, so can
the carbonate anion in LDHs to make a completely
different sort of pillared clay. Once again the economic driver is the
search for better catalysts—one of the best examples of
protonanotechnology.


And a particularly interesting
class of “pillaring” anions is polyoxometalates,
which gives me an excuse to turn back to tungsten....


* * * *


I Got Them Heteropoly
Blues...


Tungsten and some of the other
early transition metals also make interesting molecular structures that
fall quite a bit short of the 3D frameworks I talked about above. For
years it's been known that tungsten and oxygen will form
“polytungstate” ions in solution, such as
“paratungstate Z,” W12O41-10. More intriguingly,
“heteropolytungstate” ions containing a set of WO6
octahedra arranged about one or more other cations (the
“heteroatom") are surprisingly easy to synthesize and
surprisingly stable once you do. An example is the Keggin structure
(Figure 4), XW12O40-3, which contains four sets of three linked WO6
octahedra arranged around a heteroatom in tetrahedral coordination
("X” in the formula). X can be silicon, phosphorus, iron,
cerium, titanium ... a remarkable assortment of different cations.


Just as with metal-oxygen
frameworks, too, other early transition metals can form similar anions,
now generically termed “polyoxometalates.” As with
tungsten, many are stable in aqueous solution over a wide range of
conditions.


These anions represent an
extraordinary degree of self-organization: literally dozensof
atoms spontaneously assembled into kazillions of uniform units. Carbon
doesn't do that, especially out of aqueous solution. It's hardly
surprising that polyoxometalates are already getting much interest as
molecular building blocks. The interest isn't just theoretical, either;
actual molecular structures based on polyoxometalates have been
synthesized, as with the pillared LDHs I described above.


Polytungstates and
heteropolytungstates, and some other polyoxometalates as well, are also
easy to reduce—that is, they accept additional electrons
easily. When they do, the extra electron is
“smeared” over the whole structure
("delocalized,” in the language of quantum mechanics). This
makes the anion absorb visible light, so solutions containing the
reduced anions go from colorless to blue. Traditionally, these have
been called “tungsten blues” or
“heteropoly blues,” and they were a puzzle before
the development of quantum-mechanical models of chemical behavior.


Why are blues important? Well,
they show another way in which you can change the electronic
properties, and hence the optical properties, drastically with minimal
effort. In fact, polyoxometalates prove to be excellent photocatalysts
and may soon find use in photochemical water splitting (see
“Artificial Photosynthesis,” April 2005).


* * * *


Why
“oxide” frameworks, anyway?


What is it about oxygen? I've
only talked about oxygen in forming nanotechnological frameworks with
other elements. Is it also some sort of Ultimate Element, as carbon is
supposed to be?


There are some good reasons for
focusing on oxygen, besides its sheer abundance. Oxygen has two
bonds, which is the minimum for forming a
“framework.” The halogens—fluorine,
chlorine, and so on—although also powerful oxidizing agents,
can't form a framework because they can only accept one electron.


Sulfur, as oxygen's second row
homolog, is an obvious alternative. I've already noted, though, that
second-row elements tend not to be too much like their first-row
congeners, and here's another example. Although sulfur does form lots
of compounds, it's not very good at forming frameworkcompounds—i.e.,
structures with open voids. A further practical problem is that
sulfides oxidize very easily—if there's oxygen around, sulfur
and metals react with it!


On the other hand, oxidizing
elements that accept more than two electrons tend not to
“want” to form extended structures. But having said
that, it's recently been shown that nitrogen, which can accept three
electrons, can be a bridging element like oxygen.
“Nitridosilicates” have been synthesized, and even
nitridomolybdates and nitridotungstates. Since the nitrogen atom forms
three links rather than two, it also can potentially form complicated
frameworks indeed.


Whether they'll find any
nanotechnological (or other) application is left to the future to find
out.


* * * *


Toward the
Diamond-and-Other-Things Age


The advent of nanotechnology does
notmean the rest of the Periodic Table becomes
irrelevant! It doesn't even mean that some traditional elements won't
stay in demand.


It just means they'll be used for
different things.


* * * *


Figure 1.
Silicate structures. (a) Chain structure in pyroxenes; on replacing the
oxygen at the unshared corner of each tetrahedron with a methyl (CH3)
group, it's also the structure of polydimethylsiloxane ("methyl
silicone"). (b) Double chain in amphiboles. The structures in (a) and
(b) extend indefinitely both right and left. (c) Sheet structure in
mica and clay minerals. This structure extends indefinitely in two
dimensions. Individual silicate (SiO4) tetrahedra are shown
diagrammatically; where tetrahedra are joined at a vertex, the oxygen
is shared between two tetrahedra.


Figure 2.
Catechol. The spacing between the OH groups is well matched to the size
needed to “grab” a silicon atom.


Figure 3.
Perovskite structure. An oxygen atom lies at each vertex shared between
the octahedra. In WO3, a tungsten atom lies at the center of each
octahedron (positions connected by the dashed cube), while the large
site (the shaded circle) between the octahedra is empty. In tungsten
bronzes, though, some of the large sites are occupied by the additional
metal atoms. (Note: In WO3 and many other perovskites, the perfect cubic


Figure 4.
The Keggin ion. Four sets of three linked octahedra surround a
tetrahedral ion, shown by the shading in the middle. The octahedra each
have a tungsten atom in the cen


Copyright (c) 2006 Stephen L.
Gillett, Ph.D.


[Back to Table of Contents]









TRUCKS
by Amy Bechtel


What's
“hard” or “easy” depends on
who's judging....


Fourteen hundred and
seventy-six, Joanna thought automatically, watching frozen
peas bounce across the kitchen floor. Some of them disappeared under
the stove, where they would be virtually impossible to retrieve. Joanna
sighed, holding the empty pea bag in her hands. It really wasn't fair
for it to split when all she'd done was lift it out of the freezer.


Joanna's six-year-old son Ryan
had been watching the peas fall too. “Ryan?” she
said hopefully. “How many?"


Ryan looked bewildered. He gazed
across the kitchen floor, as overwhelmed as if she'd asked him to
memorize the dictionary.


"Never mind, sweetie,”
Joanna said sadly. Ryan picked up his toy truck and hurried out of
range of the peas, and ten-year-old Lauren skipped into the kitchen.


"Ha, ha!” Lauren said.
“No peas tonight! No peas for dinner.” She scanned
the floor quickly and said, “Fourteen hundred and
fifty-nine.” She was seventeen short, of course, having
missed seeing the peas that had rolled under the stove. Joanna studied
her face carefully. Eyes crinkled, thirty-seven percent; right side of
mouth up seven degrees, left side up eight degrees, wrinkles on the
lateral side of each eye. Happy, laughing.


"Why don't you help me pick these
up, Lauren?” Joanna said, watching ruefully as the parameters
of Lauren's face changed dramatically. A moment of calculation later,
Joanna deduced that her daughter was frowning.


"I didn't spill them,”
Lauren said.


"No, you didn't, but don't you
think it would be nice if you helped me anyway?"


A pause, while Lauren studied
Joanna's face, obviously trying to decide if this was an order or not.
But Lauren wasn't that far along in school yet, and she still had
trouble calculating even the most obvious expressions. She lifted her
shoulders (sixteen percent left, twelve percent right), raised her
eyebrows, and started picking up peas. Resignation, Joanna calculated.
But at least Lauren was helping with the peas.


When they'd gathered eight
hundred and ninety-two of them, Lauren said, “Mom? Why does
Ryan have to go to that special class?"


Joanna closed her eyes. Her own
little boy was in special education, completely unable to manage a
normal first-grade class. It was a hard thing to bear. She said,
“Because he doesn't learn as fast as you do, honey."


"The other kids call him names.
They say he's stupid. They say I'm stupid too, because I'm his sister."


"Well, those other kids are just
being mean, aren't they? Besides that, they're wrong. You're a very
smart girl. And Ryan isn't stupid. He's just slow."


"Are you sure I'm
smart?” Lauren shoveled her last handful of peas into the
trash, her expression changing again. Joanna quickly evaluated the new
movements and angles of her face. Anxiety.


"Yes, I'm sure."


"Fifth grade is hard, though. We
already have lots of homework, and it's only the first week. Can you
help me with it?"


"Of course, honey. As soon as I
get dinner on."


Lauren's face changed. A smile.
“Dinner with no peas!"


* * * *


Half an hour later Joanna was at
the kitchen table by Lauren's side, looking over her homework. Lauren
had sailed through her physics and calculus, but she was struggling
with her expressions assignment. This workpaper was all faces, some of
the expressions much more subtle than Joanna would have expected to
find assigned to fifth graders. Lauren was doing well with the
calculations, but kept getting lost when it came to the final analysis.


"All right,” Joanna
said. “Now you have the numbers for the eyebrows, the eyes,
and the mouth. What does it all add up to?"


"Um.” Lauren opened her
textbook, looking hopelessly at the columns of numbers. “I
don't know. Why is it so hard?"


"Because you have to memorize
what expression goes with what range of numbers, and there's a lot of
them to learn. You're doing fine, Lauren. Everybody has trouble with
this part."


"Vroom,” Ryan said. He
rolled a toy truck across Lauren's homework, peered at the problem she
was working on, and pointed at the face. “Scared,”
he said.


Joanna stared at him. The face was
scared. How had he guessed?


"Don't be silly, Ryan,”
Lauren said. “This is fifth grade homework. It's way too hard
for you."


Curiously, Joanna turned the page
and pointed at another face. “What's this one, Ryan?"


"Happy.” He scanned the
rest of the page and his lips moved upward, smiling, reflecting the
face he had just solved. He pointed to the next face, and the next, and
the next. “Sad, angry, sleepy, sad, happy."


Joanna laughed. No one could
calculate faces that quickly, certainly not poor little Ryan. But then
she started to work on the faces, and she felt her own face changing as
she solved each one. Sad. Angry. Sleepy. Sad. Happy. Ryan had correctly
named every one.


Ryan pointed at her, said,
“Surprised,” and picked up his toy truck again.


"Ryan, you're bothering me. Go
somewhere else and play,” Lauren said. “Mom, I
can't find it in the book. Mom? I need help."


But Joanna sat very still for a
moment longer, her mind racing, unable to believe what she had just
seen. No one could do what Ryan had just done, no one but an utter
genius. But Ryan couldn't even count, and the school had put him into
special education classes. Deep in her heart she didn't believe he
belonged there, but even so they were right that he would never be able
to manage a normal class. First grade meant elementary algebra and
geometry, and even at recess the other kids would be playing with
square roots and primes.


But he'd figured out every single
face correctly. In a flash, as if he hadn't had to calculate at all.
What was going on in her little boy's mind?


* * * *


That night in bed, Joanna
murmured the news to her husband David.


"He did what?” David
said.


"He did all of Lauren's
expressions homework. In seconds. He knew what every face meant."


There was a silence while David
shifted in bed and adjusted his pillow. “Joanna,
honey,” he said, “I know you're really upset about
Ryan going into special education, but—"


"Yes, I am, but that doesn't have
anything to do with this."


David sighed. “Oh,
Joanna. He must have been guessing."


"But he couldn't have been. If he
was guessing, he wouldn't have been right every time."


David shook his head.
“It's impossible, honey,” he said gently and turned
over.


"It is not,” Joanna
whispered, but David was already asleep. Joanna turned away from him
and lay awake for a long time in the dark.


* * * *


When Joanna picked up the
children at school the next day, Lauren's voice was high and strident
from the back seat. Excitement, Joanna decided.


"We have to write a
paper,” Lauren said, “about what we're going to be
when we grow up. I'm going to be a spaceship computer and navigate all
the way to Mars."


Joanna felt her face move into a
smile. “That's a good ambition, Lauren."


"I know. What about you, Ryan?
What do you want to be when you grow up?"


Silence from the back seat.
Joanna pulled out into traffic, headed for the grocery store.


"Come on, Ryan,” Lauren
said. “You must want to be something when you grow up."


"I'm not going to be
anything,” Ryan muttered. “I'm too stupid."


Moisture filled Joanna's eyes,
and they stung. Ryan had never said anything like that before he'd
started school. She rubbed her eyes as she drove past a spindly tree
that had recently been planted in the median. It only had seven hundred
and eighty-three leaves left, and it looked wilted; it probably wasn't
going to survive there.


"You are not either
stupid,” Lauren said. “You're just slow. And you
have to be something when you grow up. Why don't you be a spaceship
computer, like me?"


"No,” Ryan said.
“I can't count."


What would
Ryan do when he grew up? What happened to special-needs children when
they became special-needs adults? Even if she wasn't imagining it, even
if he was a genius with faces, what good would that
do him in the long run?


At the grocery store, she had an
inspiration. “Ryan,” she said. “That man
over there by the bananas. What's his expression?"


"I know, I know,” Ryan
said. “Bored."


"And how about that woman by the
bread?"


"That one, in the yellow pants?
She's angry."


After several more rounds she was
certain of it. Ryan was a genius with expression, not only of faces,
but of voices and body positions as well. Somehow he took in the whole
person at a glance and knew the answer without making a single
calculation. He could instantly see expressions as easily as a normal
person could instantly count the number of peas falling from a split
bag.


Joanna was in a daze when she
reached the checkout counter, and she agreed without thinking when
Lauren and Ryan asked for a candy bar each. The teenage checkout clerk
chewed gum as she tallied Joanna's purchases.


"...two ninety-eight, four
ninety-nine, eleven ninety-nine, one twenty-five, one thirty-five,
discount two twenty-three, tax six seventy-six, total ninety-eight
thirty-two,” the checker said all in one breath, and cracked
her gum.


Joanna frowned, pulling out her
checkbook. The teenager's brows drew together: confusion.


"What's that expression,
ma'am?” the teenager asked. “It's one of the bad
ones, isn't it?"


"It's disapproval,”
Joanna said. “It's rude to crack your gum when you're taking
care of customers. I'm surprised your manager lets you chew gum at all."


"Oh.” The clerk lifted
her shoulders. “I forgot I had the gum. And I have, like,
trouble reading expressions."


"Maybe you should work a bit
harder in school,” Joanna suggested.


"I don't like school,”
the clerk said, her eyes lowered, her mouth turned down. “I'm
slow, see."


"Oh,” Joanna said,
suddenly and acutely reminded of Ryan. “I'm very sorry to
hear that."


* * * *


She pulled up to the bank next,
to make a deposit. There were twenty-nine people waiting in the lobby
and the lines were long, but the tellers were generally quick. Lauren
was still trying to interest Ryan in something to do when he grew up.


"A bank teller,” she
suggested, pointing to the counter. “A security guard. Look,
see? You could have a gun."


"Maybe,” Ryan said,
looking at the security guard, and Joanna thought she could analyze a
trace of interest in his voice. More people joined the lines. Two men
moved to stand behind Joanna, shifting from foot to foot. Their
expressions were odd; she couldn't quite figure them out. Nervous, but
there was something else as well. “Ryan,” she
whispered, hoping he remembered the game from the grocery store.


Ryan looked at the two men and
his own face changed. His eyes widened, his mouth opened; twenty-nine
percent, twenty-seven. Frightened. “Let's go home,
Mom,” he said.


"In a little bit, Ryan. See?
We're almost to the counter."


"I want to go home now."


"Ryan—"


Ryan pulled away from her, made a
wide circle around the two men, and headed for the door.
“Ryan! You come back here right now!” She ran after
the little boy, with Lauren at her heels, and caught up with him at the
door.


"Please, Mom, let's go. Those men
are scary. Let's go. Please."


She almost dragged him back into
line, to teach him a lesson about running off. But he had looked at the
men's faces, and he could read people at a glance, and he was more
frightened than she had ever seen him. She took his hand and went out
the door, and Lauren followed them.


"Mom, what are we
doing?” Lauren asked. “We never got up to the
teller. Mom?"


"I've changed my mind,”
Joanna said. “We're going to go home now."


* * * *


Joanna watched the news that
night after the children were in bed. The top story was about an armed
robbery at the local bank, in which customers had been terrorized and
two men had escaped with a large amount of cash. Joanna recognized them
in the blurry picture from the security camera.


She decided not to say anything
to David. He wouldn't believe her, and he would learn the truth soon
enough just by being around Ryan. What should she do now with her
little boy? Suddenly she saw all sorts of futures for him. He could be
an interpreter for those who could not read expressions well. He could
be a security guard who could see potential problems coming. He could
be anything, as long as it had to do with people and not numbers.


But if only he could learn
something about numbers, oh, how that would help him in the world. If
only he could see the numbers, like everyone else
did. But he couldn't, no more than she could see a
face. She had to break down expressions into parts, analyze each one,
add them together. Was there some way to do that with numbers?


Joanna turned off the television
and sighed. You could break numbers down into primes, of course. Most
little kids loved doing that, but Ryan had always been bewildered by
the game. Or you could break down a total into its parts, like a
grocery sum divided into the amounts due for bread, milk, and bananas.
But Ryan would never understand that either. He needed something
simpler. What was simpler than a grocery sum?


Disconsolately, Joanna got up and
began to straighten the living room. Lauren had left her essay on the
coffee table, and Ryan's toy trucks were scattered all over the carpet.
Joanna put the essay by Lauren's backpack and then went to get the
trucks. She picked up one in each hand, then transferred both to one
hand so she could pick up another one. Then she froze, staring down at
her hand.


"Mom?” Ryan was
standing in the door to the hall.


"What are you doing up, Ryan?"


"I forgot my trucks."


"Yes, you did.” Joanna
held up the two in her hand. “How many, Ryan?"


He stiffened. “I don't
know. I can't count. I'm stupid."


And you're never going
back to that school, Joanna thought, if that's all
you've learned there. “You can't count the way
other people do,” she said, “but I'll bet you can
learn another way."


"What other way?” he
said warily.


One truck and one
truck is two trucks. He could learn that, and he could learn
each tiny progression thereafter; she was sure of it. It was going to
be terribly awkward, terribly slow; it would take years for Ryan to
learn numbers in this strange and convoluted manner, and he would still
never be able to see numbers the way a normal
person could.


But it had taken Joanna years to
learn expressions, hadn't it? And she would never be able to see
expressions the way Ryan did.


She put a truck on the floor in
front of Ryan. “One truck,” she said.


Copyright (c) 2006 Amy Bechtel


[Back to Table of Contents]









MISQUOTING THE
MOON by David Bartell





* * * *


Individuals
don't react to global tragedies, but to personal ones...


Asteroid,
schmasteroid. Just give me a big gun, and I'll blast that Big Bastard.



Ted tickled the crosshairs over a
rough and undulating gray surface, waiting for the moment to feel
right. Each deep crease was tempting, a potential fault where a
projectile cleaving to its depths could blow the whole beast apart.


Magnified in his scope, the
elephant's forehead did look a lot like an asteroid. It turned its head
to profile. Better a brain shot from the side because the cross-section
is bigger, and it meant that it wasn't charging you, like Big Bastard.
Aim for that crease under the ear ... There!


He pulled the trigger.


The elephants were going to go
extinct anyway.


The double-barreled rifle punched
Ted's shoulder with a butt like brass knuckles and a bark to match. He
felt more pain than the elephant did as she dropped like a sack of lead
potatoes. She wouldn't even feel the five tons of knockdown power from
the automatic 900 Nitro Express. A torus of yellow dust rolled away
from her and broke into the windless air of once-protected Etosha Park,
like a lazy smoke ring.


"That was the
matriarch,” said Hendrik, Ted's guide, breaking their silence
with a thick Afrikaans accent. “The rest will not know what
to do."


"My plan exactly."


Hendrik smiled grimly, digging
furrows about his mouth. He did not show his age when his face was at
rest; his freckled, cinnamon skin was taut until an emotion disturbed
it. Then he had five wrinkles for every one of Ted's, and they squeezed
his wide nose. “It is kinder to kill the entire family all at
once."


The other
elephants—eight females and two calves—bellowed and
bolted, mostly away from Ted and Hendrik. In the days when there were
still hundred-pound tusks to be had, one kill was enough.


Things were different now.


Switching to his custom-made
rifle, Ted picked off three more of the gals before they made the
scrubby trees at the far side of the water pan. Two of the fallen still
moved, but he would put them out of their misery soon enough.


His ears rang and the dust
choked. “Sorry, old girls. I would have liked to take you
with me."


"No Noah's Ark."


"'Fraid not.” Ted did
not put much faith in the DNA banks on the far side of the Moon. And
there was no provision for wild animals of any kind. They'd be very
lucky just to keep the humans alive indefinitely. Nearly all of the
fauna on the Moon was there for that purpose. With great sorrow, the
others were marooned in their natural habitats. “Not even
starfish shuttles are big enough for elephants."


The oft-repeated allegory about
starfish popped into his head:


Two men on a beach, watching
millions of beached starfish slowly dying. One man begins throwing them
back into the sea. “You can't save them all,” his
friend objects. “No, but I can save this one,” says
the first, tossing a starfish into the surf. “And this one.
And this one, and this one...."


That's how Ted Hathaway felt
about culling elephants; he did not enjoy it. Travis had
to shoot Old Yeller. Once he made up his mind to do it, he didn't think
about it. Like Hendrik, he didn't ask any more questions, because he
would not like the answers. The skyrocketing ivory trade was the only
way he could raise enough money to save a particular part of his own
species.


Ka-chow! Ka-chow!
Quick mercy.


"I can't shoot you
all,” Ted said as he fired. “But I can shoot you
... and you ... and you ... and you...."


Each shot left ringing echoes in
his ears. The asteroid was coming, but the gentle giants would not die
forgotten. He would share their moment of loss now and remember it
always. If only stopping Big Bastard was as easy as shooting elephants.


* * * *


Africans of several ethnicities
appeared in dusty, battered vehicles—a Volvo and two
combis—to help skin the carcasses. A friend of Hendrik's came
with a lorry, which would bring some of the meat back to their
families. Ted and Hendrik left them on foot, tracking one injured cow
into the bush.


The Sun set rapidly so near the
equator, dropping straight down as if of fatigue from baking the salt
pans all day, and the lack of clouds made it a brief, orange event.
They made camp, ate, and settled by the fire. A distant yelp and then a
roar caused Ted to squint into the night, but Hendrik kept his gaze on
the retiring flames. The guide seemed as unaffected by the impending
catastrophe as the wildlife was. A lion had just made a kill. What else
was it supposed to do?


"Why did you come
back?” Hendrik said. “You were safe on the Moon."


"Maybe. There aren't any lions up
there, but I wouldn't call it safe. They say bits of Big Bastard could
pummel the Moon, or that it will send chunks of Earth that way. None of
us may escape this one. And the strongholds aren't as strong as you
might think either. They really haven't solved all the problems of
self-sufficient biospheres."


"But here is certain death. Why
come back? For the elephants?"


Ted had to think about answering
that one. “They're not like other animals. When you shoot an
elephant, it's like shooting a dog or a horse. Something inside you
dies with them. But something else comes alive. I just wanted one last
look at the way things used to be."


"I understand you."


Ted laughed. Everyone else had
always said just the opposite. Even his biographer had surrendered.


"You're a very lucky
man,” Hendrik said. “You have a rare place in the
colonies, and you are still rich enough to come back for one last look
around."


Ted pulled a pipe from his
jacket, a bent Rhodesian, supposedly designed by Alfred Dunhill, if not
Cecil Rhodes himself. He tamped a Turkish blend of latakia into its
bowl. One last chance to smoke.


"Yeah, I'm lucky. I'm lucky that
ivory is in high demand now, and that I know how to get it."


"Why is it in demand?"


Ted watched a tentacle of smoke
twist up from his pipe like the shriveled ghost of a very old idea.
“Superstition,” he said. “When you want
something rare, it stands to reason that to get it, you have to buy it
with something equally rare. There are folks who think that ivory is
good luck, and that it will somehow get them a spot on the Moon."


Hendrik looked disappointed.
“That's foolishness."


"Mmm,” Ted agreed,
puffing at his pipe. “They call it the Lunar Lottery, but
it's become lunacy, if you ask me."


"Then why do you sell the ivory?
You don't need the money."


"Ah, but I do. Dolores is the
reason why."


"She left you years ago, my
friend."


"If I can purchase a double
occupancy upgrade, she'll have a damn good reason to come back now,
won't she?"


The gibbous Moon rose, and the
shimmering Milky Way shied from it. Ted looked for his crater home but
could not make it out.


Hendrik tipped his head back,
watching the Moon over his nose, mouth agape—not with wonder,
but trying to catch a memory. “Moon buggy!” he
said. “I remember that from some old documentary. Do you have
a moon buggy?"


"Bully for you!” Ted
smiled. “Not yet, but you have a good idea at that."


He inhaled the smoke from the
fire. Mopane, spicier than the usual camelthorn acacia—more
like mesquite—but more subtle, evoking memories of times and
places both good and bad. The odor mixed with his tobacco, and he held
it in his nose, eyes closed, to seal the memory.


The white dot of a satellite
snuck across the sky, from south to north. Must be polar, he thought.
Or a starfish tender. Or a spider-sat spinning a sensor web with which
to measure every aspect of asteroid impact. What good would data
minutiae do if there wasn't any planet left to benefit? The money
should have been spent on another lunar colony. Hell, they could have
even built some kind of zoo on the Moon for the damned pachyderms.


From what Ted understood, they
had spent fifty trillion dollars trying to deflect Big Bastard. The
gravity tugs and nukes couldn't keep Big Bastard out of the deadly
keyhole the way they had with Apophis in 2037. That “little
bastard” didn't take much to be thrown off by the fraction of
a degree needed to steer it clear. A little elbow-to-elbow sashay with
the Earth scooted it into a stable orbit around Mars, all as planned.
It was brilliant, a crowning achievement for humanity, inspiring
renewed respect for the abilities of the species.


But gravity tugs were just too
small to exert sufficient force on Big Bastard. A series of attempts
were made to use tugs to deflect other asteroids near Big Bastard so
that they would in turn draw the target off. Unfortunately, like rodeo
clowns failing to distract a bucking bull, they could not keep the
horns from goring their victim. Mother Earth was no help either; she
was reeling the rock in like a moth that had lassoed her flame. One
theory even claimed that Big Bastard had impacted Earth before, ages
ago, the result being the formation of the Moon. Ted believed it. Big
Bastard was like an old flame, a man-eater; having once tasted the
flesh of the Earth, it lusted for more.


The lunar colonies were already
being built when the inevitability of the impact was proven with
mathematical certitude. Where the hell was his crater,
what's-it-called, anyway?


Then Ted realized what was wrong.
He was in the Southern Hemisphere, down under, so the Moon was
upside-down in the sky. No wonder it looked familiar and all wrong at
the same time. He tilted his head to orient himself to the Moon's
southern pole.


"What are you doing?"


"Looking for the colonies, but
the Moon is upside-down from up north."


"It's all relative."


"It sure is,” Ted said,
not because he believed that. He did not believe in relativism (as
opposed to relativity) at all, but sometimes you agree with someone to
acknowledge not what they say, but that you are all too aware of their
point of view.


The Hunter rose, not
coincidentally Ted's favorite constellation. Orion was upside-down too,
but being rather symmetric, it almost looked the same. Different in a
disconcerting way. Could Orion hunt as well standing on his head? Would
he draw his sword in time and slice Big Bastard to pieces? Or would it
be he who slings the asteroid at sorry old Earth?


"I suppose I shall never know
what the Moon is like,” said Hendrik, “since the
positions are all filled."


"Bah!” Ted tamped his
pipe with a burning stick. “It's not much different from the
old Namib."


"Is that so?"


"But because the gravity is less,
the elephants grow much larger.” With that, Ted shot a smoke
ring at Hendrik, an old gag between them that placed Hendrik at the
center of an undulating target.


Hendrik smiled. “You
had me going there. Now, I've got one for you."


"Shoot."


"There is an old bushman myth
that says the Moon is a goddess. Every month, she shrinks and dies, but
then comes back to life. She looked down on the Earth and saw the
people dying there. She thought to inform them that like her, they
would always be reborn. So she sent a hare to deliver this message. But
the hare was grieving his mother, who had just passed away, and he
deliberately misquoted the Moon. He told the people that once they
died, they would come wholly to an end. When the Moon found out what
the hare had done, she hit him with a stick, splitting his lip. But she
never sent the message again, so to this day, people still believe that
death is the end of everything."


"I thought you didn't buy the old
beliefs."


"I don't buy them, but these
stories are still told to the children, to teach good behavior. Anyway,
they can be entertaining, can't they?"


Ted laughed.


They watched the Moon quietly
until the grunt of a baboon not far off wrenched Ted into a hunter's
alertness. He had already found and drawn his rifle in his mind before
the sound registered as harmless.


"You won't hear that on the
Moon,” Hendrik said.


Ted puffed on his pipe and
sighed. “No, sir, I won't."


"Listen, Ted, I've been thinking.
You and I are not just tracking that wounded elephant out of mercy, are
we?"


"What do you mean?"


Hendrik waved a dismissive hand
at the Moon. “Why don't you forget about going back there?
Why don't you spend your last days where you belong—here in
the bush?"


* * * *


The last time Hendrik had hunted
with Ted, Ted took a trophy. There was also a documentary, replayed
occasionally on Hendrik's old pod. That had been part of a program to
reduce supernumerary elephants in Damaraland and the Caprivi Strip,
globally approved, and organized by the Namibia Professional Hunting
Organization. Culling was justified on the basis that the unwary beasts
were destroying their own habitat. Of course, discussing the
possibility that it was people who were supernumerary was out of the
question. Neither drought, mismanagement, nor the culling effect of
AIDS could solve that one. Big Bastard, of course, would.


They found the injured cow
already dead and so completed their safari. Ted was one of the few who
could afford the petrol to run a vehicle, and he departed alone in it,
after a heartfelt but restrained good-bye to Hendrik.


Hendrik rode home with his friend
Loois, a load of elephant meat in the back. Loois was impressed that
Hendrik had been with a hunter of such wealth. Although Hendrik knew
the difference, it seemed that to Loois, America was as remote as the
Moon itself.


They stopped to trade for some
petrol. One whole tusk for a fill-up, a fifty-pounder. Hendrik
overheard the man at the petrol station say, “What do they
want with petrol these days? They can not drive away from the
asteroid!” Well, thought Hendrik, what
do they want with ivory?


They slept on the side of the
road, and the next afternoon they rolled up the long hill to Windhoek,
nearly home. The city was named Windhoek—"windy
corner"—for good reason. The relentlessly dry air scudded
over the rocky slope like wind over an airfoil, depositing dust over
the parched ghettos, which seemed placed to screen the yellow stuff
from the bright city on the hill.


The truck attracted some
attention when they stopped at a red light in Katatura. Kids flying
noisy kites made from flapping plastic bags came to see what the bloody
hulk was on the back of Loois's truck. Women grilling beef patties at a
roadside stand glared at the potential competition, and young men came
for handouts.


"Hey, Baster, give a little!"


Hendrik ignored the slur. The
Basters had long ago made a precarious peace with their mixed origin.
They had convinced the world of their pride in the heritage of the name
“bastards,” but the social complex held secret by
the Basters was just that. Complex. Hendrik was proud but was reminded
daily that things had not changed. His ancestors were half Dutch and
half African—Nama, actually. When they tried to opt up
socially, they were turned down—too black. They helped the
Germans fight indigenous people, only to have the Germans later declare
war on them. They were run out of South Africa, only to be courted
later as a tactic against Namibian independence. Having learned their
lesson, they remained neutral—only to find themselves at odds
with that new government. Too white.


The Basters once had their own
government under colonial rule, which was more than the other
“coloureds” could say—never mind the
Africans. This too was gone, but Hendrik was reminded of it every time
he looked at his children. His son Oscar was darker than his daughters,
so Hendrik had to push the boy that much harder, to help him overcome
his disadvantage.


"Give a little, Baster!"


So the insult did hurt, but he
gave the man a few dollars anyway. Why shouldn't he? He'd been paid
astronomically by Ted Hathaway. And it was better to be a beacon of
light than to waste money on beer and cigarettes. These poor fellows
were doomed like everyone else, so they might as well have a little
happiness.


"Listen, son,” he told
the young man, as he pressed a few dollars into his hand.
“Use it wisely. No drugs or women, do you hear?"


"What do you care, Baster?"


Hendrik felt his head grow hot.
“You think that because the world is going to end that your
behavior does not matter? This is precisely the time when God is paying
attention to you."


"Go on, old man! Your light is
green."


"You will be judged."


Loois dropped Hendrik off at his
house in Khomasdal. His wife Sarah greeted him on the cinder stones of
the yard as the retreating Sun traced its last shadows on the low block
wall around their house. They did not embrace outside. Loois helped him
unload some of the meat and left.


"How is the black one?"


"Hendrik, I tell you, our son is
dying."


Hendrik looked down at her feet.
“I know. It doesn't matter as much now, though."


Sarah's brows charged at him.
“How can you say that?"


He threw his arm to the heavens.
“That damned asteroid!"


"Big Bastard, they call
it,” she said, watching the orange clouds turn gray.
“It's like us Basters, alone in the heavens."


"Woman, what are you talking
about?"


"Maybe it's God's way of sending
us a message."


Hendrik recalled his words to the
beggar at the intersection. You will be judged. Now
those words drew bile in his throat. “Sarah, do you
understand that this is just a little more than a message?"


"Oscar is very ill. That's a
fact. You just came back with meat and money from hunting. That's a
fact. The girls are bringing their families to see what you brought.
Fact. The newspaper says that our traditional Parental Laws have been
officially nullified by Rehoboth, and a shooting star might break the
world in two. As far as I am concerned, those are just rumors. What
will you do, act on the facts, or on rumors?"


"Let's eat,” he said,
wondering why they should even bother.


Now that Ted was gone, Hendrik
returned to his retirement. There was nothing for him to do but go
volunteer at the Lutheran church. There were a lot of things to do in
the church, a newly painted rectangular building on a hill at the edge
of Vaalhoek with a view of the highway to Windhoek. On Sundays there
were three different services, each in a different
language—Afrikaans for the Basters, Oshiwambo, and Herero.
Hendrik spoke all three (as well as English) and so volunteered as a
deacon to the troubled congregations.


Life seemed to go on as usual,
with the exceptions of Oscar careening through an ever-changing and
bewildering set of symptoms and ever-more dominant news coverage about
Big Bastard. Hendrik and Sarah fed their son, kept him warm, aired out
his room, and Hendrik took note of a Bible passage about earth, fire,
air, and water. These basics to life were no different for his
ancestors in the bush or back in the Netherlands than they were to
Oscar or to Ted and the other colonists on the Moon.


Life went on as
usual—things in Namibia were not progressing at all, and
therefore Hendrik felt that he and his people were quite unworthy. He
thought of Ted often and talked to the Moon from time to time.
“Live well, Ted. You deserve to survive our judgment day."


One Sunday, Reverend Diergaardt
quoted scripture in his sermon, a disturbing passage, in the context of
Big Bastard.


But he that shall
endure unto the end, the same shall be saved.


After the Afrikaans service, and
before the Ovambo, Hendrik helped Diergaardt count the offering in the
office closet. He used the opportunity to express his concern.


"Die Bybel
tells us that he who endures to the end will find salvation. How can
this be? Does it mean that only those on the Moon when the end comes
will be saved?"


"Of course not,” said
Diergaardt. “You are confusing survival with salvation. Two
different things altogether. According to God's mercy will we be truly
saved."


"I know one of the Moon men, you
know."


"Yes, I know."


"A very brave man. It is those
men of men that will survive, while the meek shall inherit the Earth.
We inherit it, like a hand-me-down. And then our hand-me-down will
unravel, just like that!” Hendrik threw his hands out and
twiddled his fingers like cosmic debris.


Diergaardt smiled. “I
don't blame you for being dramatic. But don't forget the Exodus, my
friend. The Lord, having saved the people out of the land of
Egypt, afterward destroyed them that believed not."


A shuffling of hard soles on the
painted cement floor outside stopped Diergaardt short. He held up his
hand for silence. “There have been thieves about,”
he whispered in Hendrik's ear. Then he called out a hello.


A deep voice with an American
accent replied. “I'm looking for Hendrik Izaaks."


"Come in."


"I was told I might find you
here.” The American was fairly tall and sturdily built,
bearded, with sandy blond hair traced with gray. Hendrik had to study
the face for a moment before recognizing Ted Hathaway. “How
are you, Hendrik?"


"Ted! I am fine, and yourself?"


"Never better!"


"I didn't recognize you with the
beard."


"It's a royal pain shaving on the
Moon. Not allowed to get whiskers all over the place."


Hendrik introduced his old friend
to Reverend Diergaardt and looked at Ted with great pleasure.
“It is impossible to leave Mother Earth behind after all,
isn't it?"


Ted smiled, not an affirmation,
but Hendrik found it harder to read the face of a man with a full beard
and mustache. “Sure it is."


"So you have decided to stay
behind. There isn't any big game left, or so they say. No one really
knows, because there's not enough petrol to find out. Even so, if you
want to try...."


Ted stood so still, it called to
mind times when the two of them would crouch motionless, watching game
grazing upwind. Then he suddenly loosened up and fluffed up a hairy
smile. “You know me!” he said, and he clapped
Hendrik on the shoulder. “But no, let's talk about it over
dinner. Is that place we used to eat still any good?"


Hendrik looked at Diergaardt, who
was locking the closet, pretending not to be paying attention.


"It's become a beer hall."


"Shame. That's the last thing we
need. Let's go into Windhoek, then, my treat! We'll take your family."


* * * *


Hendrik and Ted ate alone in a
five-star hotel restaurant. Sarah had to stay home to tend to Oscar and
insisted that the men go alone. The girls lived in another town and
were absorbed with their new families. Ted had an ostrich steak, and
frugal Hendrik had chicken. Hendrik did not drink but toasted by
meeting Ted's beer with something he hadn't afforded in
months—ice water.


Ted drank deeply.
“Listen, my old friend, I have something monumental to tell
you."


"I will be delighted to hear you
confirm my suspicions, that you are staying."


Ted wiped froth from his furry
face. “Not a chance, mister. I hate to burst your bubble, but
as much as I love Mother Nature, I love myself more. Not many people
have a chance like I do, so I have to be willing to take
it—take the chance that I can get along without her."


Hendrik put down his water and
wished he could see through those whiskers. He knew Ted so
well—Ted even said so—and he had hoped that his
friend might stay. Now that he thought of it, having Ted around would
actually become complicated. Ted had no one and would be happy slogging
through the last embers of the Namib when the end came and the sand
turned to slag. But Hendrik had a family, and his fantasy of dusty days
and starry nights in the bush suddenly fell apart. He splayed his hands
out, and then his fingers.


Ted either made a grim face or
smiled. “What would you say if I told you I got a seat for
you on a starfish?"


"A seat on a starfish?"


"And a room on the Moon, of
course."


Hendrik laughed anyway,
nervously. “You came all the way here to tell me that?"


"You were right
earlier.” Ted took another deep draught of his beer.
“I can't stay away. But this has to be my last look around,
no two ways about it. While I was here, I figured I'd deliver the news
in person."


"But what about your ex-wife? I
thought you were trying to take her with you."


"Old Dolores would have none of
me. Especially when I told her I'd shot a whole herd of elephants just
for her!"


Hendrik felt overwhelmed and
muddled. “You are serious. How can this be true?"


"First, I am in a position to
pull a few strings. Second, I can think of no one I'd rather do a favor
for. You did save my life once or twice."


Hendrik gazed at a kudu head
mounted on the wall and smiled. Ted had been too eager once and had
made a grave mistake. He had ventured into tall grass with his rifle
held up, which gave the lion a chance to get between him and his
weapon. Hendrik had kept his gun at his hip and took the lion out.
“Who would have thought it of the son of a Baster bricklayer?"


"Hmm,” said Ted, waving
for another beer. “I would."


"So you bought me a room on the
Moon. But why would they let me go? I haven't taken any qualification
tests."


"Not a problem. I got you entered
as prescreened. Besides, things are pretty confused these days. Just
show up, tell them you are Hendrik Izaaks, and you'll be on your way!"


"Won't they—"


"It's all arranged.”
Ted winked. “No one will ask any questions."


Hendrik's mind fogged, and he
felt as though it was he that had drunk the beer. It took a stable mind
a long time to get used to the idea that the Earth would soon be
hammered like a mongongo nut. He had no idea how to deal with this
development.


"There's more,” said
Ted, offering Hendrik his second beer. Hendrik shook his head.
“I wouldn't have been able to pull those strings, except for
one thing."


"What is that?"


"A couple from Keetmanshoop who
were slated to go were killed in a riot. The UN diversity pool was
thrown out of balance."


"A couple? Do you mean to say
that—"


"I'm very, very sorry, my friend.
Even I'm not that rich. I could only get one seat. But listen, my final
ace was that you represent not only Afrikaaner blood, but also Nama.
There is not a single Nama, or even close relative, on the Moon."


Hendrik thought about the old
lion attack and about the obscene culling he had helped Ted with. Now
this. Tears were running down deep cracks that had rent his smooth
skin, and he wiped his forehead with a linen napkin. Despite the
killing, Ted was a sort of Noah after all, taking life, and giving it,
more than any man should ever be able to. Hendrik never told Ted how
ashamed and heartbroken he had been after shooting all those elephants,
but he remained loyal, and this was his reward.


It felt like blood money, but was
it? There was the inescapable fact that the elephants were going to die
anyway. Also, the ivory gave some hope to people, however false.
Moreover, some hungry people were fed in their passing; the elephants
died a nobler death for that, at least. In the future, looking back, it
wouldn't have made any difference.


No, thought Hendrik. No. It makes
a difference now. It's not the death that condemns
a man, but the killing.


Ted saw the tears and laughed
encouragingly. “Now you see why my news is just as hard to
deal with as you and I gallivanting in the bush together?"


"I would have to leave my family."


Ted nodded and stood up.
“No pressure from me,” he said. “It's all
up to you. If you don't want to go, I'd understand that."


Hendrik stammered. “I
don't know ... what to say."


"You might not even like the
Moon, but think of this. You would be carrying your Baster blood
forward for your people. Otherwise, it's gone forever."


"Whew!” Hendrik stared
into his napkin, eyes unfocused.


"Be right back,” said
Ted, going off to the men's room.


* * * *


When one is granted the
opportunity, not of a lifetime, but of the Ages, one's choice makes him
either a sensible man or a fool. Hendrik could remarry and become the
new patriarch of his proud race. Perhaps his descendants would return
to Earth someday and mend what was left of it. But how could he leave
his family in their greatest time of need? Not just that, but he wanted
to be with them more than he wanted his own life. They were his flesh
and blood, his soul, and they meant far more to him than his conflicted
people.


Ted left the Earth for good,
leaving Hendrik with tickets, money, contacts, and other instructions.
Everything was arranged. They would arrive at different colonies and
would likely never see each other again.


Hendrik sat up evenings, unable
to sleep. He had not told his family of Ted's offer. He felt he had to
spare his family from the torture that was his alone. He stared at the
blank television screen, toying with the remote out of habit. They
hadn't had service for a year, though they occasionally resorted to
watching pod recordings, like the documentary about culling the
elephants up in Caprivi. Lately though, Hendrik could not bear to watch
that one.


Now the most frightening
spectacles played out on the dark glass. He imagined desperation,
violence, minds growing dim in masses, people turning against one
another, fists shaking, and murder. Big Bastard might not kill anyone,
because they might kill each other first.


Oscar coughed, and Hendrik heard
Sarah tend to him. Oscar was the dark one, the one with HIV, the shame
of the household. If he did not love his son, he would have thrown him
out for this disgrace—but he did love him. The boy was
brilliant, his sisters were brilliant, and he was proud of his Sarah
for raising them so well in this hostile place—the land they
said God made in anger.


He could not let them face that
anger alone when it returned. He could not live in a tin can on the
Moon—a place even worse than the Namib—drinking
recycled urine, watching Big Bastard butcher the world like so much
meat, thinking of his family screaming as some distant continent
buckled onto Namibia, dropping cities on them.


I can't save my family
or the proud heritage of my people, he thought. I
can't save our beloved, mixed-up blood.


Hendrik stood up slowly, unlocked
the burglar bars on the sliding door, and stepped onto the patio. A
stack of cinderblocks stood by the laundry shed. He picked one up and
brought it back inside. He relocked the door.


He turned off the imaginary
television image using the cinderblock as a remote—he threw
it into the screen. The old tube shrieked and imploded like the crack
of a rifle. Glass rebounded outward, and the gray block thudded to the
rug like a dead elephant.


Sarah shouted in panic.


"It's okay!” Hendrik
called as he rushed down the hallway to meet her.


Sarah lit a candle and sat on a
painted wooden chair at the head of Oscar's bed.


"What is going on?” she
said, the flame's reflection rolling back and forth across her wide
eyes.


Like the elephants, like most
everyone, Oscar was going to die soon anyway. Looking back, of course,
it would all seem the same—that was Ted's philosophy. But no,
it wasn't the same, not now. Decisions are not made
in the future.


Hendrik wrinkled his brow and let
it go again with an audible exhale through drawn lips.
“Whew!” He swept Ted, the elephants, and even Big
Bastard from his thoughts. “Sarah, get the boy ready for a
long journey."


Sarah started to get up, as if
pulled upward by her raised eyebrows. Confused hope was wringing away
her look of fear.


Oscar sat up. “Am I
going for some new treatment?"


"No.” Then Hendrik
thought about it. He knew nothing of the medical facilities in the
colonies. Far be it from him to misquote the Moon. “Well,
it's possible."


Sarah's eyes had the intensity
they had on their wedding day. He smiled at her and took his son's hand.


"Son, listen to me. You are
going on a journey, and you must use my name. From now until the end,
you must call yourself Hendrik Izaaks."


Copyright (c) 2006 Dave Bartell


[Back to Table of Contents]









THE ALTERNATE
VIEW: EXTRASOLAR PLANETS AND OCCULT ASTRONOMY by John G.
Cramer


Since 1991 there has been great
progress in establishing the presence of planets around some of the
stars in our galactic neighborhood. This has been accomplished mainly
by observing the “wobble” in the position of a star
caused by the gravitational influence of one or more orbiting planets.
There have also been some indications of extrasolar planets from
observations of the occultation of starlight when the planet passes in
front of the star along our line of sight, from gravitational
microlensing that changes the intensity of a background star, and from
timing of the pulses from neutron stars with planets in orbit. So far,
this work has mainly established the presence of planets having a mass
of greater than that of Jupiter, since all of these methods are most
sensitive to the presence of very large planets.


At this writing (October, 2006)
astronomers have indirectly detected 197 extrasolar planets in 97
different star systems. The largest of these (HD 202206 b) has 17.4
times the mass of Jupiter and orbits at 0.83 AU (AU = Earth-orbit
radius) around a star very similar to our sun (mass = 1.15 Msol)
located 150 light years away in the constellation Capricorn. Some of
the newly discovered planets are “hot Jupiters,”
gas-giant planets orbiting in relatively close orbits. An example is
HIP 14810 b, a planet with 3.84 Jupiter-masses and an orbital radius
just 0.07 AU from a Sol-like star (mass = 0.99 Msol) located 172 light
years away in the constellation Aires. Note that 0.07 AU is a very
close orbit. By comparison, Mercury orbits our sun at 0.39 AU.
Specialists in planet formation suggest that there should be no
Earth-like planets in such star systems, because the hot gas giants in
close planetary orbits would sweep up all of the proto-planetary
material, preventing formation of Earth-like planets in orbits with the
right amount of solar radiation to support the development of life.


However, sub-Jupiter size planets
have been found. Among the smallest to date is OGLE-05-390L b, a planet
of 5.5 Earth-masses with an orbital radius of 2.6 AU (about the
location of the asteroid belt in our solar system). It orbits a
relatively dim star (mass = 0.22 Msol) located 21,000 light years away
in the constellation Sagittarius. However, its larger planetary mass
and orbit and the dimmer sun make this planet distinctly non-earthlike.


This body of work has established
a high probability that many stars are orbited by planetary systems,
but it would be of even greater interest to identify planets that more
closely resemble Earth in mass, orbit, and illumination. There are now
proposals for new instruments that would make this possible. In this
column I will focus on only one of them, the diffraction-suppressed
occulter proposed by Professor Webster Cash of the University of
Colorado.


* * * *


Telescopes like the Hubble Space
Telescope (HST) and its planned successor, the James Webb Space
Telescope (JWST), have adequate image resolution to resolve planets
orbiting nearby star systems. The principal problem with directly
observing such extrasolar planets is that the light from any star is
many orders of magnitude greater than the reflected light from its
planets and will completely swamp light from the planet, rendering
direct imaging of the planets impossible. This problem, however, may be
reduced or eliminated through the use of an occulter.


The basic idea of an occulter is
straightforward: you simply place a black disk along the line-of-sight
to a star system at some distance from a telescope and then observe any
planets visible in the star-shadow created by the occulter. In other
words, the occulter blocks the light from the star but not from its
planets. The distance from occulter to telescope is typically around
104 kilometers or more, large enough that the occulter must be located
in space and must be carefully navigated into a position where the
planets of a candidate star might become visible in the star-shadow
over some period of time. It would probably be most optimally used with
space-based telescopes like the HST or JWST, but if placed in a movable
geosynchronous orbit it might be used with an Earth-based telescope.
However, there is a basic wave-optics problem with the occulter scheme.


Light is an electromagnetic wave.
When such waves are intercepted by a black disk, the waves are
diffracted at the edge, and some of the wave fronts change direction,
bending around the disk edge to be deflected into the shadow region.
Thus, a truly black shadow is difficult to achieve. In realistic
situations, this diffracted starlight is much stronger than the light
from planets around the star, and because of diffraction effects a
circular disk is not useful as an occulter in searching for extrasolar
planets.


Fortunately, there is procedure
called apodization (Latin for “removing
the foot") that can reduce the diffraction from an occulter. This is
done by the smoothing or tapering of the sharp edge of the occulter in
such a way that the waves from different regions tend to cancel and
diffraction is suppressed. In optics laboratory applications this is
often done photographically by producing a black disc with an edge that
has progressively lighter shades of gray as the distance from the disc
center increases. However, such a gray-edge occulter would have many
problems in space-based applications. The production, launch, and
deployment of a gray-edge photographic image many meters in diameter
would produce many logistic problems, and its long term survival in a
space environment under bombardment from cosmic rays, ultraviolet
radiation, and micrometeorites would be problematical.


Therefore, Professor Cash,
working under a grant from NASA's Institute for Advanced Concepts,
developed a better idea. He decided to approximate the gray-shaded edge
of the occulter disk with carefully shaped blades that either blocked
the starlight or passed it completely, therefore producing what might
be called “binary apodization.” Cash decided to use
an average light transmission of the occulter disk that has the value 0
(black) out to some radius R and an average light transmission of 1-
exp {-[(rAR)/S]2n} at larger radii. The falloff of the disc edge S is
typically about equal to R, and n is typically around 4 to 12. These
parameters and the distance F from occulter to telescope are tuned to
optimize the occulting performance for the wavelengths of interest in
the range 600 to 1800 nm, arriving at the values R=S=12.5 m and F=5.0 x
107 m. The result is an occulter shadow that will suppress starlight by
a factor of 10-12 at 600 nm (orange light) and by 10-6 at 1800 nm
(infrared light).


The light absorption is
implemented by blocking light at the edges of the occulter with blades
that resemble 12 petals of a flower. These black
“petals” are wide at the base where they join the
black disk and taper on a smooth curve to points at a distance of about
two or three disc radii, so that the “blackness” or
absorption as averaged around the occulter is given by the reduction
function given above.


The image that the telescope
would see with the occulter in place is not completely free of light
from the occulted star. The image still contains some diffraction where
the blades meet, as well as a halo of zodiacal light. Zodiacal light is
starlight scattered from the lens-shaped cloud of dust that surrounds
the central star and extends out to well beyond 1 AU. The zodiacal
light is reduced by about a factor of 10 by the occulter, but it is not
eliminated. However, Cash has shown with simulations that, even with
the halo of zodiacal light, at a distance of 23 light years the
occulter and the JWST could observe Venus, Earth, Mars, and Jupiter as
bright spots in an image taken of the Solar System.


In the environment of space,
Cash's occulter scheme appears to be fairly robust. Pinhole
penetrations of the black object by micrometeorites should not be much
of a problem, since the occulter could be designed to self-seal around
small penetrations. Moreover, even if the occulter developed many
pinholes, the diffraction effects would spread the penetrating light
over an area much larger than the images of interest, reducing its
effect. Since the flower-petal edges are either completely opaque or
completely transparent, there are no partially transparent gray regions
with transparency that might be degraded by irradiation. Cash has also
calculated that “bites” removed from the edges of
the occulter by space debris can be tolerated as long as they are
fairly minor.


What about finding indications of
life on such extrasolar planets, once they are found? An occulter
system could also be useful in that investigation. The initial
atmospheres of most planets are made of hydrogen, ammonia, and methane,
with essentially no free nitrogen and oxygen. It is only when life is
established that the atmosphere is re-processed to form an Earth-like
atmosphere with free nitrogen and oxygen. The reflected light passing
through planetary atmospheres has some wavelengths removed by molecules
that selectively absorb those wavelengths. For example, an Earth-like
life-bearing planet where photosynthesis is dominant should have
absorption lines for O2 at about 685 nm and 760 nm and for water at 720
nm, 815 nm, and 960 nm. Similarly, the atmosphere of a Jupiter-like
planet with no photosynthesis should have methane lines at 610 nm, 725
nm, 885 nm, and 980 nm, and an ammonia line at 790 nm. Therefore, given
sufficient exposure time to do spectroscopy on the light from the
planet's image, it should be possible to identify life-bearing planets.
Moreover, by looking at the time sequence of modulated light from the
planetary image it should be possible to determine the rotation rate of
the planet and the presence (or absence) of continents.


How long will it take for this
phase of planet discovery to begin? That depends on elections,
political decisions, and NASA management. Presently the Bush
Administration has been pushing its Mars/Moon initiative without
providing any significant new funding to support that activity.
Consequently, the space sciences end of NASA has been feeling the
impact. Projects like planet finding with new technologies may have to
wait for a more enlightened administration.


* * * *


References:


Extrasolar Planets:



NASA/JPL New World Atlas,
planetquest1.jpl.nasa.gov/atlas/ atlasindex.cfm


Occulter:


Webster Cash,
“Detection of Earth-like planets around nearby stars using a
petal-shaped occulter", Nature 442, 51-53 (July 6,
2006);


Webster Cash's web site, casa.
colorado.edu/~wcash.


Copyright (c) 2006 John G. Cramer


[Back to Table of Contents]









COOL NEIGHBOR
by Michael Shara and Jack McDevitt





Illustration by
Broeck Steadman


* * * *


The best
legacies may be things of no immediate obvious value.


Greg Cooper had been sitting in
the control center of the Weber gravity wave observatory, eating
popcorn and calibrating Icewave, when he realized
he had about a minute to live.


He'd been writing a letter to
Kristi Lang, hinting at the discovery he was about to make public, and
suddenly it was over. The order-of-magnitude calculation took ten
seconds, and told him he was a dead man. Bad karma. He choked off a
wave of panic and self-pity. No time for regret. He knew exactly what
was coming. The portholes would fluoresce ferociously, down-converting
the X- and gamma rays to optical photons for a few spectacular seconds.
The last thing he'd ever see.


Warn the people on
Clarke: get the tourists back inside.


He opened a channel.
“Mayday, Ana, Mayday. Incoming hard radiation. Get everyone
back onboard, into the shelter. Do it now!"


Five kilometers away, Ana
Vassileva, the observatory manager, gaped at the transmission. The
real-time solar X-ray images and radiation monitor live-feed were
working perfectly. It was near solar minimum, so Ana wasn't surprised
to see nothing at all brewing on Sol. “What are you
blathering about, Greg? I haven't seen a sunspot, let alone a serious
flare, in weeks. Sol's asleep."


"Ana, the local spatial strain
went totally off-scale twenty seconds ago ... a gravity tsunami just
went by. Einstein never dreamed something this big could happen.
There's a gamma ray burst right behind it. Get everyone into the
shelter!"


"My God,” she said,
“Marnie's out there in the shuttle."


Ana wasted no time. She hit the
alarm and klaxons sounded through the station and its cash-cow hotel.
Tourists dropped everything, crowded into the passageways, and headed
toward the water and lead-lined chamber nestled in the heart of Clarke.
A middle-aged woman with blonde hair askew grabbed Ana in the hallway.
“What's going on?” she demanded. “This
had better not be a drill, dammit, we had one yesterday."


"It's okay,” Ana said.
“Just hurry, please.” She needed another twenty
seconds to reach the Shuttle Control Center.


* * * *


In the cockpit of the shuttle,
Marnie Leeds had backed slowly away from Clarke, allowing her French
Canadian guests to ooh and ahh at the view. The hotel-spa was shaped
like a clamshell, with ceiling-to-floor windows on the concave side
facing Earth. Many tourists spent their entire time on the station
savoring the sight, reluctantly leaving the picture windows only to
sleep. The Neugebauer Infrared Array hung four hundred meters above the
hotel. A thirty-meter telescope anywhere is a remarkable sight, but
permanently perched thirty-five thousand kilometers above Africa, it
was riveting. The segmented primary mirror glistened with a yellowish
hue from its bacteria-thin gold coating.


She looked down at the carbon
nanowire space elevator cable, which snaked from the geosynchronous
station to the summit of Kilimanjaro. Nearly cloud-free today, the
continent was framed between the Atlantic and Indian Oceans. Marnie
activated the shuttle's electron beam pointer. She highlighted Cairo,
Algiers, Casablanca, Gibraltar, Abidjan, Lagos, Kinshasa, Capetown, Dar
es Salaam, Nairobi, and Addis Ababa, circumscribing the cradle of
mankind in less than two minutes. Her passengers responded with
delight. She opened a channel to Ops. “Shuttle One to Weber.
We're on our way. ETA tweny minutes, over.” Whichever
astrophysicist was on duty in the gravitational wave telescope, he or
she knew well in advance when tourists were coming. Marnie always
hailed them anyway. Tourists were a minor time-sink for the scientists
and techs, but their steady revenue stream was a godsend, so they were
treated like visiting royalty.


Of the whole crowd that rotated
in and out of the Weber, she most liked turning the tourists over to
Greg. He was one of the few scientists on the project who really
enjoyed engaging the public, and he did it with wit and charm. Kids
initially reacted cautiously to his sharply chiseled face and intense
eyes. His captivating talk of voracious black holes, punctuated with
energetic violin playing for illustration, had them pleading for more
by the end of a tour. Marnie relished his enthusiastic explanations of
collapsing stars and warped spacetime. “The life of every
star is a war between gravity and pressure,” he inevitably
began. “Hydrogen fuses into helium. Then the helium fuses
into carbon and oxygen. That supplies the outward pressure to balance
the crushing pull of gravity. Gravity is the stellar angel of
death.” All the while accompanying himself on the fiddle, he
usually made a scary face with that one and the kids whooped.
“Gravity always wins when a star's nuclear fuel is exhausted."


* * * *


"Negative, Marnie.”
Greg's voice, unlike she'd ever heard it before. “Radiation
surge coming. Didn't Ana get to you yet? Go back to Clarke. Get
everybody under cover."


"Greg, when?"


"Now, goddammit. Do it now."


She switched over to the
passenger comm system. “Everybody belt down."


Moments later Ana was on the
circuit. Her voice stayed level, but Marnie knew frantic when she heard
it.


* * * *


"Greg.” She was having
trouble breathing. “Marnie's got six aboard Shuttle One, two
adults and four kids. She's coming around. Headed back. Just a
kilometer away. Three minutes out, tops. Shuttle Two's still down.
We'll turn One around as soon as Marnie's group is back
onboard.” Her voice quavered. She desperately wanted to order
Marnie and Shuttle One to pick up Greg. But even with her fiancee's
life at stake she knew the rules. Tourists come first, no exceptions.
Ever. “Greg, what can we do?"


A long silence. “Ana, I
haven't a clue, sweetheart. I wish I'd said it more often, but you're
beautiful and I love you.” A pause. Then: “I think
we're at the end here."


"There must be
something—"


He went quiet again.
“Give Kristi a hug. And listen; tell her to read her e-mail.
It's important."


* * * *


Marnie pitched the shuttle 180
degrees in the ten seconds after she'd spoken with Greg. Guidebooks
ricocheted off the cabin walls. Frantic yells came from the passenger
section. “It's okay,” she told them, while she
turned sharply toward Clarke's airlock. One of the kids started to
whimper. “Hold tight, everyone. Brace yourself!”
She gave it a solid thirty seconds of thrust. The sudden acceleration
pushed them all into their seats. The shuttle raced back toward the
hatch at an illegal fifty knots. The approach was slightly off-center.
She tapped the port thruster, and was horrified to see it remain ON
after she released the button.


The shuttle bounced hard off the
emergency bumpers. Her head snapped sideways into a restraint. Metal
tore. Thank God for the pressure suits. Marnie struggled to remain calm
as the deploying airbags punched at her. Her youngest charge, Lissette,
was screaming. The emergency lights glowed angry red, then failed as
the passenger cabin split along its main seam. A hurricane of escaping
air tried to suck out her passengers. They were all screaming now.


Stay calm, stay calm,
stay calm.


Marnie remembered her training as
the airbags deflated.


Don't panic.



Her suit was intact. So was
everyone else's. She flipped on her helmet lights, unbuckling the six
terrified tourists. Holding Lissette herself, she pushed and pulled the
family toward safety. The airlock was meant for four. No time for that
luxury. She jammed her six wards inside and pushed in after them. Ana's
face was on the monitor, giving her a thumbs-up. The inner door closed
on her arm and rebounded open. She tried again and held her breath
until the hatch closed. The green lamps came on and she slapped the
emergency re-pressurize knob. Air flooded the chamber. “Keep
your suits on,” she told everyone. When the pressure
equalized, Ana yanked open the outer hatch. “Around the
corner,” she said. “Don't stop, keep going, turn
right, thirty meters to the shelter.” When one of the kids
tried to ask a question, she simply shook her head. “Go!
Go!” she barked.


Marnie watched her take a moment
to look back at the wrecked shuttle. Ana bit her lip. Then she pulled
herself into the shielded station core.


* * * *


Greg saw the seismograph needle
twitch twice, then jerk back and forth with growing fury. The
oscillations surged, and he watched the arm snap off in mid-swing.
Pulling himself to the digital console, he read a peak strain of 10-17
on Icewave, his cryogenic diamond gravity-wave
detector. No way, he thought. Can't be
that high.It must be a major system glitch.
But the hundred-kilometer interferometer gave him the same impossible
result. “Savor this,” he told himself.
“You just recorded a gravity wave a hundred million times
more powerful than any on record. The neutrino detector guys are about
to experience the biggest flash in history. Incredible. Probably fry
half their equipment.” The cold realization that other, far
deadlier radiation was also coming froze the thought and turned his
face chalk-white.


It had been over a minute since
the seismograph needle had sent its warning. The radiation monitors
hadn't budged. I'm not dead yet, Greg thought. It
can't be a collapsing neutron star, I'd be toast by now.
“Ana,” he radioed, “the strain is so big
that it's got to be something nearby."


"What, Greg? What could it
possibly be?"


"A supernova. Something massive.
Maybe a Wolf-Rayet star. The core might have run out of nuclear fuel
and imploded, but the star's outer envelope runs behind the process.
The gamma rays coming from the interior would have needed a few more
minutes to break through the envelope. Call Kamiokande in Japan, okay?"


* * * *


"Kamiokande IV is reporting eight
hours of right ascension, minus forty-seven degrees of
declination,” said Ana tensely. “Somewhere in
Vela.” It had taken her just a minute to reach the duty
technician of the world's largest neutrino telescope. Its cubic
kilometer of ultra-pure water was two miles underground to prevent
false signals from cosmic rays. Most neutrinos raced through the entire
Earth without being stopped. But a tiny fraction crashed into protons
in Kamiokande's water, generating minuscule flashes of light. Many of
the Japanese telescope's trillion photo-detectors had saturated during
the neutrino onslaught, but the neutrino flash's position in the
southern Milky Way was firmly in hand. “Plus minus two
degrees is their guess, near Gamma Velorum. Roughly an hour before they
can refine the position, but at 810 light years, Gamma's the closest
Wolf-Rayet star in the sky. I wish that helped."


Maybe. At the moment, Greg had
other priorities. “Okay, Ana, Thanks. It means I have a few
minutes more. When Marnie gets back, if you could send the shuttle PDQ,
I'd be grateful."


She was silent a long time.


And he knew. “What's
wrong?"


"Greg, Shuttle One is
scrap.” She added a few details as she finished sealing the
shelter doors. She was trying not to lose control in front of the
bewildered tourists.


"No chance at all?”
Greg asked.


"No,” she said.
“I'm sorry."


They were on a visual hookup, so
she could see him. He nodded and pressed his lips together. Sometimes
things like this happen. Nobody's fault. “It's okay,
Ana,” he said. “Thanks for trying."


He pushed back in his chair, as
if it might be possible to draw it around him, to hide in it. Not
exactly my day. I hope it isn't too painful when it comes.
There was nowhere to run. He'd put on his spacesuit for the shuttle
trip, but it couldn't protect him from a gamma ray burst. Vela was
visible through the portside hatches. He moved as far starboard as
possible, behind some computer racks. Tying up the loose strands of his
life took just a few minutes online. He was finishing when the comm
link suddenly roared with static and his visor blazed like the midday
Sun.


* * * *


As they suspected, it had been
Gamma Velorum. The star had undergone core collapse, producing a
supernova brighter than the full moon. Kristi Lang was shattered by the
news from Clarke. Greg was the only casualty, thank God, but he had
been her mentor and friend, and had provided encouragement and support
three years earlier during her Ph.D. research. She now had an
international reputation for outside-the-box thinking, and a bit of
media renown to boot. She'd concluded, on strong evidence, that a class
of brown dwarfs, failed stars, were being used to mark black holes.
They were being pressed into service as interstellar lighthouses. It
was a wild idea, of course. And, like all wild ideas, it was still not
widely accepted. But it would be one day.


Greg would not be there to see it.


Ana had called her within an
hour, although the story was all over the media by then. The director
had been fighting back hysteria, and Kristi had lent her strength. Hang
on, Ana. He had a good life. Our lives are richer because he lived.


Words. What the hell good were
they at a time like that? And in the morning, when she was able to get
herself together, she found the e-mail from Greg.


It was routine stuff. How much he
was enjoying himself on the Weber. How he was at that moment watching a
shuttle filled with tourists headed his way. And then there was a P.S.:


There's big news in
Sagittarius. A Clyde Tombaugh special. Gotta go. More later.


Clyde Tombaugh was the guy who'd
discovered Pluto. What the hell was Greg talking about?


More later.


* * * *


She gave it a few weeks, and then
tried to reach Ana. But she was in transit, on her way to Baltimore.
Kristi located her on a glide train and arranged to meet her for dinner.


Ana could not have been called
beautiful, but she was an attractive woman, with blue-green eyes, lush
chestnut hair, and the kind of presence you associate with leading
ladies. Kristi was shocked by how much she'd changed over the few weeks
since they'd last seen each other. Ana looked gaunt and her skin was
sallow. She was bitterly unhappy and it showed. Kristi gave her a hug.
“Are you okay?” she asked.


Ana shrugged. “Not
really.” Her eyes avoided Kristi, and wandered instead around
the interior of the Crab Pot. It was early, and there were only a few
customers present. Piano music was being piped in. “I finally
got all the reports,” Ana began. “Greg got an awful
dose. Around 90 Sieverts. Five is fatal.” Her voice caught,
and tears began running down her cheeks. She managed a smile and wiped
her eyes. “It took us over a day to get him out of Weber. He
was horribly burned, comatose, and—well, the details don't
matter."


"Ana, there's no need to talk
about this."


"I need to, Kristi. I really need
to."


A waiter appeared. His name was
Richard, and could he get anything for the ladies?


They ordered Maryland microbrews
and crabcakes.


Ana took a deep breath.
“He's in cryo-susp and his daughter won't let the doctors
pull the plug."


"Pity. But I can understand it."


"Did you know we're getting sued,
too?"


"No. By whom?"


"The tourists. They've launched a
class action claiming negligent design and inadequate radiation
protection. A wonder they aren't suing God for setting off Gamma Vel so
close to us."


"Any of them get sick?"


"As far as I know, they're fine.
They're claiming mental trauma, or that their health was put at risk,
or some damn fool thing."


The beers arrived. Kristi was
used to touching glasses when she dined with old friends. But Ana
simply swept hers up, gazed at it sadly, and took a long swallow.


"Don't they sign a legal release
before they go up?"


"Yes. We're not responsible for
acts of God. And if a nearby supernova isn't an act of God, I've no
idea how you'd define the term. But it'll be at least a year before we
can bring back tourists. No tourists, no money. So Neugebauer and Weber
and all the other telescopes are mothballed. Everyone is on unpaid
leave."


Kristi tried her own beer.
“What are you going to do in the meantime, Ana?"


"I don't know. A couple of places
have offered me temporary positions. The University of Maryland wants
me to come on board permanently."


"I'd consider it."


"You know, Kristi, I don't think
I realized how much I was going to miss him."


Salads came. Kristi's was a
Caesar. “I got an e-mail from him,” she said.
“Right at the end. And I can't figure it out."


Ana frowned. “Why not?"


Big news in
Sagittarius. A Clyde Tombaugh Special. "You have any idea
what he might have meant?"


Ana gazed at the ceiling, and
then poked a fork into her salad. Finally she shook her head.
“I don't have a clue."


"Nothing you're aware of that he
was looking at in Sagittarius?"


"Not that I know of."


"Odd."


"There is
something, though. I'd forgotten."


"What's that?"


"He told me to make sure you read
your e-mail."


Kristi nodded. “The
center of the Milky Way,” she said, “is in
Sagittarius, so that part of the sky is choked with stars. I don't know
where to begin, Ana. I don't know what he was talking about."


Their dinners arrived. Ana paid
no attention to the food. The door opened and eight or nine people came
in, an office party. The hostess showed them into the next room. Lots
of laughter and, almost immediately, a round of applause. Ana took a
deep breath, and those dark intelligent eyes finally found Kristi.
“I'm sorry. Whatever it was, I think Greg's taken it with
him."


* * * *


Kristi went to the memorial
service, and said a few words trying to explain what Greg had meant to
her, both professionally and as a friend. Then she'd choked up, as
several people had before her. She listened to the minister say how
Greg was with God now, and in better hands. He was alive and well in a
better place than this. She wished she could believe it.


When it was over, she flew back
to Pasadena, where she was a junior assistant professor at Caltech. She
resumed work, and did her best to forget Clyde Tombaugh.


But it didn't take.


Tombaugh had been born in
Illinois to a family of farmers. Despite a limited formal education, he
developed a fascination for telescopes at an early age. But he didn't
think highly of the telescope he'd gotten at Sears. So he'd built his
own. He eventually put together his own reflector and took it to Mt.
Lowell in Arizona. The observatory director was looking for an amateur
astronomer to try to find Percival Lowell's Planet X. Tombaugh hunted
through thousands of photographic plates, comparing the positions of
millions of celestial objects on successive nights, looking for
something that moved. Looking for Pluto. On February 18, 1930, he found
it.


She put a picture of Tombaugh on
her desk. Clear eyes, good features. Probably in his mid-twenties then.
What did you do, Clyde, that connected with Greg?


She got occasional e-mails from
Ana, who had taken a position of some sort with the International Space
Commission. Then, one evening close to Christmas, she called.


"Hey, kid, how are you
doing?” she asked. The winsome smile was back. “You
spending another scintillating Saturday night at the office?"


Kristi nodded ruefully.
“Yup. It's just the Yottabytes and me. No other way to win
that Nobel before I'm forty.” Kristi stared hard at the
screen. The Spacecraft Control Center logo glowed dimly over her
shoulder. “Ana, are you where I think you are? How did you
get up there?"


"The yo-yo tourists settled out
of court, Kristi. I came back up to Clarke yesterday with a skeleton
crew. Just in time. Five months earthside almost killed me. Be happy
for me; I'm alive again."


"I am, Ana. You know that."


"I have something here for you.
Where did I put it?” She pretended to fumble with her e-pad.
“Aha! Yes. A little something for the holidays."


Kristi's e-pad beeped. She looked
at what had arrived and gasped. All of Greg's logs. “I owe
you another crabcake dinner, Ana."


"No chance I'll collect that
meal, Kristi, unless you bring the crustaceans up here yourself on your
next observing run. I'm done with Earth. Too crowded, too dirty, too
noisy."


* * * *


Kristi looked at the logs, and at
Tombaugh's picture.


Greg had been up there almost
continuously for three years. As she paged through the transmission,
she saw that she had all his observations and calibrations. Everything.


The proprietary period was
normally two years, so part of it was already public. Kristi had long
since thumbed through that, hoping to find something that would put her
on the track of the Sagittarius sighting. But the recent stuff was
something else. It had been released early, probably because of a
family stipulation. Kristi scrolled through the lists, trying to get a
feeling for what he'd been doing during the past two years. And she
discovered he'd been observing every brown dwarf in the Milky Way. My
God, he was trying to prove I'd been right.


He had also observed every brown
dwarf wannabe in her thesis, at higher resolution. He'd collected a
billion spectra. He worked harder than I did. A lot
of his observations were of cataclysmic binary stars, and she stripped
those out of the file. She also removed the obvious quasars and Seyfert
galaxies that masqueraded as brown dwarfs in her survey. That got her
down to twenty million objects. Well, hell, it was a start. Sagittarius
occupies just over 2 percent of the sky, but it includes the dense core
of the Milky Way. Deleting everything not inSagittarius decreased the
sample size to four million. But now what?


Clyde Tombaugh's photographic
plates were her last hope, and she knew it. The plates were taken a few
nights apart and Tombaugh had compared them, star by star. Pluto gave
itself away by moving nightly, relative to the background stars. Greg's
reference to a “Clyde Tombaugh special” didn't make
any sense. Only solar system objects move enough in a few nights to be
detectable. The nearest brown dwarf is twelve light-years away. Its
nightly motion would have been far too slight for Tombaugh to have
seen. Brown dwarf surveys of the early twenty-first century should have
found anything closer. Greg, what did you mean?


The riddle gnawed at her. Her
other research was beginning to suffer and Sills, the department chair,
was visibly worried. “You're up for tenure in a few years,
Kristi. Don't get sidetracked by unsolvable problems. You've got to
keep publishing."


* * * *


Months went by with no progress
and no publications.


She called Ana. “I
think he saw something that moved."


"But you've no idea what."


"No. I'm looking for a needle in
a haystack of four million straws."


"It might not be as difficult as
it sounds,” she said. “If you're right, one must be
different from all the others. If you examine Greg's four million
spectra for one second each, you'll be done in seven weeks. That's
assuming you don't eat, sleep, or bathe, but those are overrated
anyway."


The words hit home. One
must be different from all the others.


* * * *


The four million Sagittarius
objects were an astrophysical smorgasbord. They included twelve classes
of cool variable stars whose spectra sometimes mimicked those of brown
dwarfs. In her original work with brown dwarfs, she'd needed a year to
eliminate these interlopers from her catalog. Which baby did
I throw out with the bathwater? Every sorting algorithm in Numerical
Recipes divided the objects into one of the twelve classes.
Actually, though, there were thirteen classes. Twenty-two bona
fide brown dwarfs had slipped into the detritus heap, and
Greg had managed to scoop them back out. For the hundredth time, she
idly glanced at the first few. They were similar, late T dwarfs, with
temperatures around seven hundred Kelvins, hardly worth a second look.
Something clicked. These spectra weretoo
good. The resolution and signal-to-noise were better than
anything she had ever seen. How did he get such great data?


She displayed the next six of
Greg's spectra. They were all virtual clones. Holding her breath, she
overlaid all twenty-two plots on top of each other. Tiny
shifts in radial velocity between them, she noted. Otherwise,
they're absolutely identical. “Let's see where they
are.” She scanned the list of celestial coordinates. All
twenty-two objects lay within an area five hundred times smaller than
the full moon. It can't be a cluster of brown dwarfs because
they'd have a much larger spread of radial velocities. She
placed the coordinates in a plotting package, and two twists of a
corkscrew stared back at her. Bingo! Not twenty-two objects. Just one.


Kristi, you're as dumb
as a rock. She sagged into a chair, shutting her eyes tight.
The enormity of what Greg had found overwhelmed her. And he'd died in
the middle of it. His loss was suddenly clear and crushing. She held
the spectra to her chest and began to cry.


* * * *


Ana was leading the efforts to
reactivate the geosynchronous telescopes. There was no way to confirm
or extend Greg's discovery without Neugebauer. Kristi called and, on an
encrypted line, told her what she'd found.


Ana listened and paled.
“Are you sure?” Her voice trembled.


"I need to do some more checking.
But yes, I don't think there's much question."


"Thanks, Kristi,” she
said. “I'm glad you told me. It's helpful to know what he
did.” She took a deep breath. “Do you need more
data? What can I do to help?"


Kristi nodded. “The
radial velocities are crucial.” She was trying hard not to
sound excited. “The variations were tiny. Greg must have
missed them. I need a set of high dispersion observations every six
hours for a month. Can you do it?"


Ana could. “You bet.
I'll get started tomorrow."


* * * *


The Neugebauer data accumulated
on her computer for three weeks before Kristi allowed herself to
inspect it. The direct images were saturated, just as she had expected.
No wonder, she thought, it's so bright. But
the spectra were exquisite.


And they confirmed her suspicions.


She called Ana. “It's
what we thought.” She bubbled with enthusiasm as she
described the results.


"Now what?” asked Ana.


"We need access to the
coronagraph.” The coronagraph was designed to block the glare
of a distant sun, allowing its planets to be seen.
“Joel,” Kristi said.


Ana nodded.


Joel Dayan had designed and built
the coronagraph at Clarke. He was on the staff at Caltech, just down
the hall.


* * * *


Joel blinked in surprise as she
walked into his office and shut the door. “Tongues will wag,
Kristi,” he smiled.


"You wish, big fella.”
Joel was one of the brightest people Kristi had ever met. He had done
breakthrough work on instrument design, was a superb classroom
instructor, and had won a Shaw Foundation Prize four years earlier for
his imaging of terrestrial planets in nearby star systems. In his spare
time, he partnered with an airline pilot as the California state bridge
champions. He was also pretty good-looking.


"I need your help,
Joel,” she said.


He sighed. “What can I
do for you, Kristi?"


"I want to make you an offer you
can't refuse.” She described her discovery, told him yes
there was no question, and no she wasn't kidding. She showed him the
new data from Ana.


He listened, looked skeptical,
nodded. “Greg's work, you say?"


"Yes."


"I never got to meet
him.” He sat quietly, considering what she'd said.
“My loss."


"Can you help?"


"You're asking me if the
coronagraph is available."


"Yes."


"Not really. It's never
available, Kristi. You know how that is."


She knew. People were lined up
for months ahead. “We'd have to get somebody to give up their
time."


"I know,” she replied.
“But you have seven days, beginning this Friday."


"You're offering me a junior
partnership in a risky enterprise that might be in the textbooks for
centuries.” She smiled and nodded. “Let me think
about it and I'll get back to you."


He walked into her office an hour
later. “Okay,” he said. “We can do it."


"This Friday?"


"Yes. But there's a price."


"Sounds like the end of my
virtue."


He laughed. “I'll take
it if it's available. In any case, I want to go with you."


* * * *


Three years earlier, Kristi had
almost frozen to death in a snowstorm when her car slipped off the
Kilimanjaro summit road. This time it was sunny right to the top. The
auto-drive let them both enjoy the view. They relaxed and laughed and
snacked as the pressurized car climbed more than five kilometers above
the surrounding savannah. The Yuri Artsutanov Space
Elevator was celebrating its thirtieth year of operation. Large banners
hailing the international consortium lined the road. This would be her
sixth trip up, and his tenth. Security had been beefed up since her
last visit. The guards put their suitcases through X-ray, terahertz,
and pion imagers. She hated being swabbed for a DNA sample. Joel just
shrugged. “Standard operating procedure where I come from.
Better that than a lunatic bringing a polio-smallpox cocktail onboard
in her own body."


The cable seemed to hang from
infinity, contrary to the laws of common sense. Yuri's
base towers were surrounded by enormous structures extruding new
nanowire ribbon. The lifting capacitywas being doubled to one hundred
tons. Competition from the rival elevator, the Bradley C.
Edwards, anchored due south of Hawaii, remained fierce. Joel
and Kristi were the only passengers, so the steward ushered them into
the first-class section. Nice, she thought. This
is how the other half lives. They strapped themselves in as
the hatches clicked shut. The carbon nanowires stiffened and the
elevator lifted away from Kibo, the summit crater. Minutes later they
spotted Kigali and Kampala across Lake Victoria. The Indian Ocean came
into view and the Earth became round. Venus and Saturn appeared as the
sky turned dark blue, then black. Their eyes adapted to the night, and
the star clouds in Sagittarius became visible. They talked, drank
coffee, and enjoyed each other's company. Toward the end of the
nine-hour ride, she fell asleep on his shoulder. He stroked her cheek
to wake her just before the clamps on Clarke locked the elevator in
place. “Hey, kid,” he said, “it's
showtime."


Ana was waiting for them. She
hugged Kristi and shook hands with Joel. Kristi had warned her to wait
for dinner, and Ana laughed when she saw the crabcakes. A complex
Stellenbosch Chenin Blanc with a hint of citrus enlivened the evening.


* * * *


Joel had stenciled HARSH MISTRESS
(HM) on his coronagraph, because of the sub-nanometer precisions
required to make it work. He'd anchored the core of the device to
carbon-silicon nanorods in liquid helium to eliminate flexure. Cooling
and testing the alignment was a three-day blur of activity. The
instrument was trivial in principle—it used a small metal
disk to occult the glare of a star. Its ten-billion-times-fainter
planets could then be seen. Detailed images of Jupiters and Neptunes
around nearby stars were like shooting fish in a barrel for HARSH
MISTRESS. Joel had built HM for his Ph.D., to take the first resolved
images of Earth-like exoplanets. A decade later, he had a hundred
discoveries to his credit. All were like Mars or Venus, with
atmospheres utterly devoid of oxygen. Religious fundamentalists were
using this to “prove” that life on Earth was unique
and divinely created. He rolled his eyes when Kristi teased him about
it. “Nutcases,” he said. “I'll need a
bodyguard when I find an oxygen-dominated terrestrial world."


A few months earlier, Joel had
serendipitously detected two Ceres-sized asteroids orbiting Barnard's
star. They were the first exo-asteroids known. The precious observing
time they were going to use now had originally been awarded to look for
more asteroids around other nearby stars. Greg and Kristi's discovery
took precedence, so Joel was going to sacrifice all seven days of his
hard-won Neugebauer time to make the necessary observations. A
small price for astronomical immortality, he thought. If
it works. And he didn't mind having a very attractive redhead
like Kristi Lang feeling indebted to him.


* * * *


Caltech's press officer reminded
Kristi of a bulldog. His cylindrical body and stubby legs supported a
square head with sad brown eyes, short golden hair, and a white beard
over large jowls. Alan Boxer loved his job and the eclectic scientists
whose work he publicized. This morning promised to be a high point in
his career. Two hundred media representatives were munching donuts and
downing coffee in Feynman Hall, waiting for him to begin the press
conference. He nodded, and the Astrophysics chair of Caltech stepped to
the podium.


Albert Sills was beaming. He wore
a vest that portrayed the Earth on a navy blue background of stars. It
was his way of signaling an Event. “Most scientists count
themselves lucky if they make one significant discovery in a
lifetime.” He gazed out across the audience.
“Professors Kristi Lang and Joel Dayan have each done that
already. She has found a type of star that nature cannot manufacture.
That might be synthetic. He has taken the first pictures and spectra of
Earth-sized planets orbiting other stars. All of these planets are
barren. Her results suggest that intelligent life exists in the cosmos.
His results suggest that extraterrestrial life is absent or very rare.
Isn't science wonderful?!" When the laughter
subsided, he looked toward them, standing off to one side.
“This is their day. Doctors Lang and Dayan, please tell us
what you have found."


Joel raised the microphone for
Kristi and it promptly emitted a deafening squeal. He fiddled with the
controls, and a second try brought it quietly within range.
“That's why a skilled instrumentalist is so essential for
every astronomy team,” she began. He laughed with the
reporters but looked nervous, so she gave him a broad smile and faced
the media. The New York Times and Science
correspondents had been tipped off, and were sitting on the edges of
their seats. They get it, she thought. She savored
the moment, gloriously happy, for herself and for Greg. She almost felt
his presence in the room. “Welcome,” she said.
“I'm pleased that so many of you are here. We want to
gratefully acknowledge our co-author, Ms. Ana Vassileva, who couldn't
be here today. She is spacewalking at geosynchronous altitude right
now. Ana manages the health and safety of our instruments, and has
gathered some of the data for our work. We're going to take fifteen
minutes to summarize our discoveries, and then we'll be happy to answer
questions.” The corkscrew appeared on the holoscreen beside
her.


"Greg Cooper sifted through a
billion rejected brown dwarf candidates from my doctoral thesis. Only
members of our own solar system move enough, relative to the background
stars, to be easily detectable in a few days. That's why I rejected all
rapidly moving star-like objects. They must be asteroids or Kuiper Belt
objects. Greg re-observed them, and all the other rejects that varied.
One, and only one, of my rejects displays the spectrum of a brown
dwarf. And it turns out, it is a true brown dwarf.
Greg re-observed it every month for almost two years. The twenty-two
points of the corkscrew that you see on the screen plot the apparent
path of this object across the sky. A single turn of the corkscrew has
1/30 the apparent diameter of the full moon. That's huge.”
She took a deep breath. “The only way that can be true,
ladies and gentlemen, is if the brown dwarf is a binary
companion"—she paused—"of the Sun."


The audience sat stunned.
Somebody murmured in back. Shocked expressions appeared on the
reporters’ faces.


"The brown dwarf's orbital motion
around the Sun carries it continuously in one direction,” she
continued. “The position from which we
view it varies cyclically over one year as the Earth moves around its
orbit. Combining those two motions produces the helical path in the
sky. The apparent size of the corkscrew helix places our newfound
neighbor about one hundred times farther from the Sun than Neptune:
five hundred billion kilometers away. That's a pretty long walk. But
it's still a hundred times closer than the nearest
star."


Hands were going up all over the
conference hall. The reporter from Science didn't
wait to be recognized. “If it's so close, why hasn't anyone
discovered it before?"


"There are five
reasons,” Kristi said. “Our companion is almost a
million times less luminous than the Sun. It's three thousand times
further away. We can never see it in the same spot twice, because it
takes 150,000 years to complete one orbit. For the past eight thousand
years, it's been moving through Sagittarius, the most crowded part of
the sky. And finally, it's eight times cooler than Sol, so it only
emits infrared light. That's why nobody's ever noticed our cool
neighbor until recently. Until Greg Cooper did.” She took a
sip of water, and touched her e-pad.


"We've measured the brown dwarf's
radial velocity. It's wobbling back and forth with perfect periodicity
every seven days.” A sinusoidal curve with data points and
error bars replaced the corkscrew on the holoscreen. “This
means that a significant mass must be orbiting our neighbor, tugging it
back and forth."


A hand went up. “Are we
talking about a planet, Professor Lang?"


"One second, please, and I'll
explain. Dr. Dayan's state of the art instrumentation permits us to
measure the object's speed as it orbits the brown dwarf. That helps us
pin down the masses of our two discoveries. The brown dwarf is forty
times the mass of Jupiter. If it were eighty Jupiters, it would fuse
hydrogen, and be visible to the naked eye as a blood-red star.


"The orbiting mass is three times
that of the Earth. But it's divided.” She looked at the
reporter, and at her audience. “To answer your question: No,
we do not have a an orbiting planet.” She paused.
“We have two.


"Ladies and gentlemen, we
apparently have a miniature solar system, just eighteen light-days
away.” The hands had gone down, and the excitement had turned
to stunned silence. “We thought you would like to see them.
Dr. Dayan?"


Joel touched his e-pad and two
fuzzy crescents appeared on the screen. “Dr. Lang and I
spotted these, in the first image we took. At
first I was certain that the double image was an internal reflection in
the coronagraph. We rotated the optics by 90 degrees, but the crescents
didn't budge. They are real, nearly identical twins. We are seeing both
night and day on each world's surface, hence the crescent
shapes.” Another touch and two much sharper crescents filled
the screen. “Several hours of focusing the instrument brought
us to where we could take a crisp image every minute. Concatenating
them gives us the first movie of twin terrestrial worlds, which we'll
now see."


The planets came alive, circling
their common center of gravity. They orbited the brown dwarf in perfect
lock step. On one world, cloud masses swirled over continents, islands
and oceans. The second planet was totally enshrouded in clouds. Flashes
that could only be lightning were visible on its night-side. Many of
those present broke into spontaneous applause. Joel smiled and nodded.
“During the last few hours of our observing run, Dr. Lang
measured each world's spectrum, and I now ask her to describe what she
found."


Kristi returned to the
microphone. “Humanity has the technology today to send a
robotic spacecraft to our neighboring brown dwarf star and its twins.
If we use the Clarke cable as a whip, we could be there in twenty
years. And we are going to go. Let me show you
why.” The holoscreen displayed another pair of spectra.
“The ocean world has water in its atmosphere, of course.
There's oxygen, ozone, and methane, too.” She stopped, took a
deep breath, and thought again of Greg. I wish you were here.


"The spectrum also shows a
distinctive feature here that can only be produced
by chlorophyll. The other planet, the cloudy one, shows nothing but
carbon dioxide and nitrogen. The ocean world is alive."


The academics in the audience sat
spellbound. Many of the reporters were already filing stories with
their e-pads.


"Life has taken hold on a planet
just eighteen light-days from Earth. It has failed on the twin planet
right next to it. If we choose to do so, we can learn why life
established itself on one and not on the other. And then, perhaps, we
will understand how life got started on Earth."


Joel squeezed her hand beneath
the podium. “Great, Kristi,” he whispered. Lise
Meitner must have experienced the same wave of joy when she proved that
an atomic nucleus could be broken into smaller parts. Kristi had never
felt more alive. “Ladies and gentlemen, thanks for your
attention."


A forest of hands mushroomed in
front of her.


(EDITOR'S NOTE: Kristi
Lang and Greg Cooper appeared earlier in
“Lighthouse,” April 2006)


Copyright (c) 2006 Michael Shara
and Jack McDevitt


[Back to Table of Contents]









IN TIMES TO COME



Shane Tourtellotte has been
showing us a series of visions of the future in which
“overlays” can be used to reform human beings in a
way far beyond the means of old-style “reformers,”
by effectively rewiring their brains with traits deemed more desirable.
Initially, of course, the method was used on a small scale and with
great caution, to turn the most “incorrigible”
criminals into people the rest of us could live with. But one thing led
to another, and next month's novella “Trial By
Fire” is what the author describes as the crisis point of the
whole series. Given some success with such a new and powerful tool,
what happens when a culture-wide trauma suddenly provides an
irresistible temptation to use it on a far larger scale?


We'll also have stories by, among
others, Michael A. Burstein and Robert Greenberger, John G. Hemry, and
Jerry Oltion, plus Part 2 of Karl Schroeder's serial Queen of
Candesce. Richard A. Lovett provides the fact article,
“The Ice That Wasn't,” about archeological evidence
of a time when some of our ancestors’ early efforts at global
warming may have unwittingly averted a genuine catastrophe.


[Back to Table of Contents]









THE SMALL POND
by C. Sanford Lowe and G. David Nordley





* * * *


Being a big
fish may be attractive, but can have correspondingly big
disadvantages...


Chapter 1


In the Solar System's Kuiper Belt,


9 May 2250


"Return? Return!? But we just got
here! Nobody's even been down to the surface yet!"


The surface floated in front of
Liz Avonford, forbidding, mysterious. She put a hand on the Marsden's
observation window as if to touch the unknown planetoid below
them. It drew her to it with a force far greater than its negligible
gravity.


Salim shook his head firmly.
“Orders from Dr. DeRoot. We have to go back. Besides, we
didn't tell them we were going to land. I think Vitus DeRoot would
rather someone else be the first on the surface. This is the biggest
thing found in the Solar System in the last century—it's over
300 kilometers across! It's historically important. The institute would
want to be involved in the landfall decision. We've got a big fish
here, and we aren't expected to be catching big fish. We should get
permission."


"Nuts!” she said. At
3007 AU's from Sol, it was her call. “I'm going down for a
couple of hours at least. We're too far out to be calling back to
headquarters. It would take a month to get permission."


"Thirty-four days, sixteen
hours,” the Marsden added, helpfully.
“25 August 2250."


"Look, they didn't say so in so
many words,” Salim said, “but..."


"Nuts to the politics! I found
it. And I'm going to be the first one down."


Silence. She was the expedition
commander and the legal authority in place, unless Salim or someone
relieved her. And they would not do so over this; no one had expressly
ordered her not to make landfall.


Liz grabbed the doorjamb and
projected herself across the deck to the nearest excursion vehicle. She
checked herself smartly with a hand slap on the cockpit rim, pivoting
her legs onto the seat. A quick visual showed the standard equipment
was all present, including a helmet and coveralls in the wire mesh
locker behind the pilot's station.


"Activate and close
up,” she ordered the module.


Two hours later, she was on the
planetoid's surface, leaving the first human footprints on its regolith
of coal-black cosmic dust.


She crouched slowly to keep her
feet on the ground and set an analyzer on the surface.


"How old?” she queried.


The display inside her helmet
projected 7.219 gigayears.


"Salim, this thing is older than
the Solar System! Over seven billion years! It didn't come from here!"


Salim's groan echoed through her
helmet, so loud it made her wince. She sighed. Bad enough to make an
uncoordinated landfall on a big ice ball, but this was an uncoordinated
landfall on a major discovery. She would go down in history instead of
someone much more senior. She straightened her shoulders. That, she
thought, was just tough.


* * * *


Two months later, Liz was back on
Earth at Saint Petersburg, in Vitus DeRoot's office at the top of a
very tall ISA tower overlooking the Nevsky Prospekt. DeRoot, she
thought, was all the more terrifying because of the way his friendly
avuncular manner could mask his anger.


"Shall we go through the
particulars?"


Liz willed her fisted hands to
straighten and shook her head. She had a good idea of what would be on
the list—every piece of negative information about her
performance since she arrived in the Earth's Solar System.


He was going to do what he was
going to do.


"The executive committee feels
that we should take advantage of your family connections and the public
attention your exploits have received in our outreach program."


Visions of intro classes and
faculty teas rushed through her head. “With respect, Dr.
DeRoot, I've not had any university experience. I did my degree
on-ship, on the way in from 61 Cygni."


He smiled. “Not to
worry. We can accommodate you in both respects. Ginny Lu has a long
list of elementary schools over the entire planet that need speakers.
It would be a real treat for the children to meet someone who was born
around another star, and is so famous. You'll be assigned to her.
Anything else?"


"When does this all start? I have
a milk run to the Black Hole Project in the asteroid belt."


DeRoot shrugged. “I
wouldn't worry too much about the BHP; that's just too premature and
grandiose—Director Zhau Tse Wen's political problems will
shut them down before too long."


Liz felt a cold chill down her
back. Was that what was behind this?


"Hilda Kremer, your sister, is on
that project, is she not? I'm sorry.” He frowned and looked
down.


Liz bit her tongue.


"You colonials come back here
with so much enthusiasm, but this is a very old solar system and a very
old planet with agendas that go way back.” He shook his head.
“One needs to tread carefully. Are we done?"


DeRoot had simply made a
personnel move based on “needs within the
institute.” It had already been decided. What was done, was
done.


She left DeRoot's office and went
to her apartment on the thirty-second floor. There she opened a bottle
of Mayagues Port, went out on her balcony, and looked out over the
Ploshchad Ostrovskovo, awash in the late summer sun.


She thought about her mother, the
near legendary starship Captain Katherine Avonford, as she looked at
the huge Russian monument to Catherine the Great. Its larger-than-life
scale also reminded her of her planet-sculpting father, Wotan Kremer.
She had vowed not to be swallowed by her heritage but also, perversely,
felt obliged to live up to it in some way, to be larger than life
herself. She shuddered; time enough to get things back on track
tomorrow. With that she set aside a couple of detox pills and proceeded
to get smashed.


The next morning, Liz went back
to her small office in the exploration division. The door wouldn't
open. She groaned, then wiped her hand and the handle to aid the
ancient fingerprint recognition system's ability to recognize her paw.


It still wouldn't open.


A soft beep sounded that only the
person standing in front of the door could hear. Liz touched the net
for admin.


I am sorry, but you
are not authorized entry to this office, came the reply.


Of course I am!
Liz sent. I'm Elizabeth Avonford and this is my office. For a
while, anyway ... Her stomach tightened as she realized what
had happened. Chaos! It had only been ten lousy hours!


A young man, a tall blond, came
down the hall toward her, followed by a cartload of boxes. As he
reached her, he smiled winningly and stuck out his hand.


"David Levi.” He
pronounced it dah-FEED leh-VEE. “A visitor already! As you
see, I haven't moved in yet."


"It's my office,” Liz
said, knowing she was wrong.


Levi stared at her.


Liz sighed, deflated.
“At least it was. I think my stuff is still in there."


"Oh, dear.” Levi looked
concerned. “Let's see."


He put this hand on the pad and
the door opened. The office was bare.


"Damn!” Liz said. She'd
only had it for three years, and most of that time she'd been in space.
Still, there were memories—her first real job.


She looked at the wall where the
pictures of her family had hung. The empty shelves that had held a few
precious real books. Even her snow kitten doll was gone.


Levi looked mortified.
“I'm sorry, I ... They just assigned it."


Liz shook her head and wiped away
a tear. “It's not your fault. I'm sure the service robots
have stashed my things somewhere.” She composed herself.
“Well, what do you do?"


"Bionanotechnology. I got my
doctorate at Jerusalem United fifteen years ago and finally got a
position.” He stepped aside and the cart moved into the
office with his things. “Only so much to do and a hundred and
twenty-three billion people to do it."


Liz smiled and shuddered
inwardly. She had a sudden insight into what resentment there might be
towards her or any other colonials taking up positions.


"And you are?” Levi
asked.


Liz hesitated, then sighed. He'd
find out soon enough. “Elizabeth Avonford."


His eyes went wide.
“The person who just discovered the new planet three thousand
AU's out? Captain Kate Avonford's daughter? And I'm taking your office?
I'm very sorry!"


She smiled falsely.
“Bureaucratic error. Uh, ten days before spring or after
autumn equinox, the sun sets right behind the old fort. Enjoy it. By
the way, it's a kuiperoid or planetoid or whatever—not a
planet.” She turned and walked to the elevator.


As she entered her apartment, she
realized she had to talk to someone. She touched the net for her older
sister, Hilda.


Hilda, I just got my
ass fired. She took a breath. Help!


A few minutes later, her sister
was on her wall screen. Hilda had inherited wide-set blue eyes from
their father, Wotan Kremer, and a long nose so much like her own that,
in certain positions and lighting, it was almost like looking in a
mirror. But Hilda's hair was an almost platinum gold, while her own
locks were more reddish brown, attesting to Catherine Avonford's Celtic
lineage. And Hilda had a strong chin. Liz often thought about having
her own enhanced.


"Good morning, Liz. What's
happened?"


Liz unloaded. “I don't
know what to do next,” she concluded.


Hilda appeared thoughtful.
“Look, Dr. Sarah Levine has changed her mind about going to
Lacaille 9352 to work on the fabrication and the launch of its impactor
for the BHP. You're used to command and an expert in space resources.
Interested?"


Liz caught her breath in the
thrill of the offer. Eleven light years away, at a start-up
interstellar colony, she would likely have a major role. Then she
hesitated. “Hilda, I don't work for people very well. I'm,
well, kind of bullheaded."


Her older sister smiled
knowingly, but instead replied, “You've led four expeditions
since you got into Earth's Solar System, all successful."


"Well, yes, but when I do an
expedition, it's my show."


Hilda looked pointedly into the
camera. “That's what I'm going to recommend."


Liz opened her mouth and couldn't
close it. In charge of the whole show? No boss, no politics?
Eleven light years from Earth with nothing to do but make it happen? She
looked at her sister, excited, almost breathless. “You're
kidding ... You're not kidding. You think I'd have a shot?"


Hilda laughed. “That
bullheadedness, along with your ability to improvise, is probably just
what we need. There's a man out there named Gunheim, former PM of
Queensland, given to grandiose schemes. He'll probably be in local
politics out there, and if he starts interfering, it will take a strong
will to stand up to him. We've got a planning meeting in a few minutes,
so I've got to go. Should I ask Tse Wen?"


Liz caught her breath. The
responsibility would be huge; a monstrous projectile of precisely the
right mass would have to leave Lacaille 9352 at just the right time and
reach just the right velocity to meet the three other projectiles with
nanosecond precision at the experiment vertex. A small pond, yes. But
she would be the big fish in it. That excited her. And making the Black
Hole Project happen would be an exquisite revenge on that arrogant,
disingenuous bastard, Dr. DeRoot. But...


"Hilda, we haven't had much time
together."


"I know. But I may be heading out
myself. Dad's headed back to New Antarctica; he and I have some issues
to put behind us. The project needs a local lead. There are other
political problems, though. Sis, we have all eternity ahead of us.
Let's get together at New Antarctica when it's done. Maybe mom will
come."


Liz grinned. “Now that
would be interesting. Okay, I'm in. If Tse Wen wants me, I'm ready."


She signed off and touched the
net. Any starships headed for Lacaille 9352 in the next year?


The C.E.
Singer, Peter DeRoot commanding. It would leave
Venus Equilateral in eight months.


DeRoot? Any relation
to the Director?


Brothers.


Probably irrelevant, Liz thought,
but just bad luck if not. The Singer was her only
choice. She stored the information and turned to her apartment window.
Gold and pink clouds floated in the sky beyond the Ploshchad
Ostrovskovo. She looked to the northwest, toward the lands of the
Vikings and of Nansen and Amundsen. There was so much she hadn't taken
time to see.


* * * *


Chapter 2


Between Sol and Lacaille 9352,


23 September 2264, Sidereal
Reference


In her third day after emerging
from hibernation, Liz Avonford lay on a towel on the grass by a tiny
pond under the warm artificial sun of the starship recreation dome,
eyes closed. Linked to the computational power of the starship via
bioradio and the local net, she was hard at work, simulating orbital
motions in the Lacaille 9352 system.


At a time compression of 10,000,
the planets of the system traced their orbits. Two small ones, Sunbeam
and Canning, lay close in, surrounded by the orbits of a pair of larger
worlds, Venus-like Carlisle and Mars-like Martin. Further out was a
thin belt of asteroids, then a pair of gas giants, Munro and Spencer,
which might have been twins to Uranus and Neptune. Beyond those rolled
an icy Plutonian world, Rayl, at the inner edge of a wide ring of
kuiperoids.


A brilliant flash and afterglow
in the inner system caught her eye. That must be it, she
thought—the impact that would occur in the Lacaille 9352
system a dozen years from now. She replayed the last hours of the
collision in real time and high magnification. A largish asteroid
approached Martin, the Mars-sized world, slowly, gracefully taking a
whole second to cover its own diameter to start with. One thousand one
... But the asteroid sped up as it approached the planet until over the
last two or so planet radii, it was sucked into the Mars-like body in a
flash. Liz stared intently as a great enveloping black cloud boiled out
of the wound and spread around the whirling planet. She sighed at the
great stroke of cosmic luck that would let her be present at such an
extraordinary catastrophe.


"Elizabeth Avonford?"


But the luck wasn't all good; it
would happen just at the end of their BHP impactor's acceleration.
Debris splashed from the collision could easily interfere with the vast
solar arrays and beam drivers needed to send their impactor on its way.
She asked the computer to light the array's position in vivid green,
trailing and fading over several million virtual kilometers. The debris
made a virtual cloud that spread from Martin inward and outward, and
the edge of the cloud touched the ring of power stations that would
power the Black Hole Project. Should they divert the asteroid for one
revolution? Or change the time-mass-velocity profile to get the beam
out before the impact?


"Elizabeth Avonford?"


The sound of her name penetrated,
and dimly aware that it was the second time she'd been called, she
groaned and opened her eyes, disoriented. Reality was calling her back
from the virtual universe and it took a moment to adjust, like waking
up from a dream.


Her eyes got into focus. The man
who had spoken to her had a familiar accent, but she couldn't quite
place him. “Yes?” she replied.


"David Levi."


She touched the ship's database
and made the connection.


"Oh yes. You're the young man..."


"...from Israel, who took your
office.” He chuckled. “I quickly found out that was
no place for anyone with an independent soul!"


They shared a rueful laugh.


"Your first time on a
starship?” Liz asked.


David nodded. “I stayed
awake; watched the Sun shrink to a point of light and redden. I didn't
realize how red it was going to get. The safety lights in the
observation bubble gave me the clue—when our gamma hit two,
it seemed almost as red as they were."


At a gamma of two, the starship
was moving at 86 percent of lightspeed—stretching the Sun's
yellow light to red. “That's clever; I hadn't thought of
doing that."


"We should get to see it again as
we slow down approaching Campbell."


Liz's eyes widened.
“Campbell?"


David smiled. “AKA
Lacaille 9352."


"We?” Liz asked. She
liked him instantly.


"Judi Lalande, Su Ahng-Lo, and
the Captain—those of us who have been awake the whole trip.
Lalande is an astrophysicist doing research en route. I understudy
Ahng-Lo with biosystems; I shall have my credential and experience by
the time the voyage is over."


"Looking to ship out again, then?"


"I must see the universe and it
is good to have as many qualifications as one can acquire. As soon as I
solve the mystery of that kuiperoid you found."


Liz raised an eyebrow.
“What mystery? Other than it's clearly something the solar
system picked up from somewhere else."


David grinned, delighted to pique
her curiosity.


Liz touched the net again; within
the errors of measurement, her planetoid was the same age as the
Lacaille 9352 system—make that the Campbell
system—7.392 billion years, plus about 3.6 million or minus
2.2 million.


"That could be a
coincidence,” she started.


David looked at her, a glint in
his eye. “I think it is nearly a twin of the rock that's
going to crash into Martin, maybe even the other half."


"The other half?"


"A rapidly rotating binary rock
comes close to a giant planet, like Munro, and gets pulled apart. The
slower half goes into a chaotic orbit around Campbell. The faster half
gets ejected from the system entirely."


"This happened recently? Campbell
is moving very rapidly."


David nodded. “But in a
halo orbit about the galactic center that turns out to be commensurable
with that of Sol. They come close every 560 million years. Three times
around for us, two for it."


"That's still an incredible
coincidence."


He laughed. “Oh, I do
not think it is so much. There are five hundred billion plus stars or
near stars floating around that big black hole in Sagittarius. What are
the odds that none of them come close to Sol periodically?"


Liz chuckled. “Well, if
you put it that way..."


He nodded and his eyes blazed.
“Now I go a little off the path that is beaten. About 560
million years ago, life on Earth got a good, uh, kick in the trousers."


"The Cambrian
explosion?” She began to roll her eyes. “That's way
too much of a coincidence."


David shrugged. “That
is why I've said nothing, officially, yet. But I think maybe I will
find some biology around this red star we go to. And I wonder if it is
biology we have already seen."


The importance of what he said
sank into Liz. An independent origin on Earth, or an import from
elsewhere ... “Campbell is almost three billion years older
than the Solar System..."


David's eyes glowed.
“Ah, you understand!"


Liz thought about her finding the
kuiperoid, their chance meeting in the hall of the administration
tower, and now heading together for Lacaille 9352, sharing the same
passion to do something significant. Perhaps there was something to
fate.


"Are you busy for
dinner?” she asked.


"What about lunch?” he
countered, delighted by her attention. “It is almost
lunchtime now."


She laughed. He was as eager as
she was. But she had an engagement. “The captain offered to
show me his collection of ancient navigation equipment. He's going to
establish a small museum at the Minot Space Colony around Campbell.
I'll be in his quarters for lunch."


"Well, dinner then?"


Liz allowed herself a slight
smile. She had to be a decade older than him, even subtracting the
years she'd spent in cold sleep. Was he looking forward to more than
just dinner? The prospect was not entirely unpleasant.
“Okay,” she smiled. “1900 in Sphere One."


Liz touched the net for a map.
The Singer's habitable parts consisted of six
spheres spaced hexagonally, like beads on a stiff hoop, around the
magnetic field generation cable. Between spheres, sections of a torus
enclosed the wire and a passageway. The ship spun about the hoop axis
for stability under thrust along that axis and for centrifugal gravity.
The heavier lower half of each sphere rotated on the hoop to keep its
floors level under any combination of acceleration and spin. The
diagram showed the floors parallel to the spin axis, as they were now
with no axial thrust. She was now in Sphere Three, with most of the
other passengers. Sphere One, two spheres antispinward, was crew
country.


"Captain's table, then?"


Liz nodded. Let him think he has
competition.


* * * *


Liz looked forward to seeing the
old hardware and was a little early to Captain DeRoot's quarters. On
the way, she passed a woman who looked upset and gave Liz the strangest
look imaginable, but said nothing and hurried down the access tube.


Judi Lalande,
the AI identified.


Each sphere had four decks and a
mess. By tradition, Room 131 on deck three of Sphere One was the
captain's quarters in all ships of this design. In her voyage to Earth
as a teenager, she'd never come close to Room 131; Captain Yuri Ivanov
had been a serious, forbidding figure who smiled at girls maybe twice
in a voyage. Remembering that sense of forbidden territory came back to
her now. Liz had captained her own exploration craft in the Solar
System, but here in this moment on the Singer, she
was an excited child again.


The captain's door slid silently
open as she approached. He was at his desk, seated with his back to the
door. Overhead was a set of shelves holding various pieces of metal
equipment with dials, buttons, brass tubes, and lenses that all looked
strange to her. The room itself was no bigger than her own.


"Come in, come in,” he
said, almost as if irritated. Then he turned and smiled.
“Peter DeRoot, and you are the redoubtable Elizabeth
Avonford?"


She nodded.


Instead of rising to shake her
hand, he pulled a brass tube from his desk and offered it to her.
“It's a telescope made five hundred years ago or so. A
whaling ship captain out of Lisboa, Portugal, used it in the early
eighteen hundreds. Go ahead, pull it out."


She grabbed the end of the tube
and pulled; it slid easily out to a length of about half a meter.


"Does it work?"


Captain DeRoot got up and
motioned toward the side of his cabin. An ordinary man, he wore his
hair relatively long so it flopped over his forehead in a careless,
boyish way. In contrast, his bearing and reserve spoke of
self-confidence and authority.


A door opened revealing a room
with a polished wood-grain table surrounded by plush chairs. She walked
in and gazed around; the walls, except for one, were hung with real
framed pictures of sailing vessels and spaceships. She smelled real
wood. The wall without pictures had a great box mounted on it with
shiny brass fittings—hinges and a hook. The wood was
varnished so deep and lustrous that it seemed still wet.


Captain DeRoot walked over to the
box, lifted the hook, and swung its doors open, revealing a black shiny
surface. “Lights,” he said softly.


The lights went out, and as her
eyes adapted, Liz could see stars slowly spinning around, except for
one bright one. A direct view window! “How..."


"The inner and outer windows line
up during the coast phase,” Captain DeRoot said.
“Go ahead, try the telescope."


She put the tube to her eye.
After a slight adjustment of the length of the tube, she brought the
golden point of light into focus. “Oh! A bright violet
star,” she said. “It seems impossibly small and
intense. Is that Lacaille 9352?"


"That is its communications
laser, blue shifted by our velocity. By the way, Roger Gunheim says
Lacaille 9352 is called Campbell now, after an author who wrote a novel
about using solar energy to power space flight about three hundred
years ago. The planets were named after characters in it."


She felt his hand find her waist
in a gentle, if presumptuous way. Her heart pounded. Was this really
happening? She moved his hand away.


"I thought that wasn't
official,” she said, going back to the telescope.


"We're a long way from the
Interplanetary Astronomical Union."


She felt his hand again.


Captain DeRoot laughed.
“And, I am in charge here."


His hand moved up from her waist
toward more intimate territory. It had been a very long time since a
man had touched her that way, and she felt both fear and excitement.
But her mind told her this was too soon, way too soon. Liz pulled one
hand free of the telescope and gently removed the captain's hand.


She felt momentarily rattled. He
clearly meant it in a friendly manner, she tried to convince herself.
Then she flashed back to the look on Judi's face.


"You're going to Campbell to take
charge of the impactor project,” DeRoot said, “to
see that it gets made and flung toward the implosion site."


"Yes."


"There are people on site already
with much more experience who can do that."


"Zhau Tse Wen sent me."


Captain DeRoot quietly chuckled.
“At the risk of paraphrasing myself, we're a long way from
Dr. Zhau. The man in charge at Campbell is Roger Gunheim. He's a nice
enough man as long as you do what he says.” DeRoot's smile
was genuine, but his eyes were penetrating.


Liz carefully kept her voice
level. “He's got a whole colony to worry about. I just have
the BHP operation."


"Roger is a good friend of mine.
We've made the Sol-Centauri voyage twice together, without hibernation.
There is much time to think between the stars, about how things are ...
and how they should be. Now I could put in a good word for you...."


Or not, she realized. Chaos!
There it was, bald and simple. She could give the bastard what he
wanted, or maybe risk everything she'd come for—everything
she'd promised Hilda she'd do.


Liz went through her internal
arguments pro and con. She craved power and she didn't want to risk
losing it. She wanted to be in charge and wanted it in the worst way.
It meant never getting kicked out of your own office at the drop of a
hat, never being humiliated like that again. She could pay the price.
She could take a shower afterward.


She let the captain lead her back
into his room.


* * * *


The dinner table was almost full
when she and Captain DeRoot arrived; she felt as if every eye was upon
her. What did her face look like? Did they know?


"How was your visit to
131?” David seemed cheery and oblivious.


But a dark knowingness in Judi's
eyes screamed to Liz. Liz sent her a message on the ship's net. It's
not what you think. He wanted something from me, I wanted something
from him. Nothing emotional. Besides, I've had worse.


"I got to see the brass
telescope. We looked at Campbell and the comm laser,” she
said to David.


A nervous smile flickered across
Judi's face. What does he have on you?


What does he have on
you? Liz answered.


Judi frowned. My kid. A
custody judgment. He could take the kid to his father and leave me here.


"Captain DeRoot has an
interesting collection. Did he show you his working reproduction of
that ancient Greek computer? He made it himself.” David, of
course, had replied to what she'd said aloud.


Liz touched the net for data on
the device and recognized it; it had been on the top shelf in DeRoot's
bedroom. She'd stared at it during his heaving climax.


"I saw it."


Come on, what's he got
on you? Judi came back.


My job. She
gave Judi the details.


"Uh, ladies, is something going
on?” David asked.


It must have been transparent
that they were exchanging net messages. Liz gave a quick glance toward
Captain DeRoot, but he was explaining something to an entranced female
passenger, one of the last to come out of hibernation.


Liz gently shook her head. Later.
Aloud she bantered, “You wouldn't believe it. Well!
Any luck with your panspermia studies?"


"Oh sure. Did you know that there
are at least forty stars that made visits to the solar neighborhood?
Five of them came through at roughly the same time as Lacaille 9352...."


* * * *


After dinner, David found himself
walking back along the curve of the access tube with Elizabeth Avonford.


She seemed subdued, and he tried
to think of something to say to cheer her up, but when he opened his
mouth he shut it again. What was one supposed to call her? Dr.
Avonford, Elizabeth, or Liz? He deferred to his more normal upbringing
and compromised on Avonford. Okay, maybe Elizabeth Avonford, he thought.


She looked increasingly upset, so
he risked seeming foolish. “What's wrong?"


She stopped in the passageway and
looked into his eyes, her face hard and weary. “I shouldn't
say anything."


David watched her sigh, knowing
she needed to unload. He waited. Finally, she began to talk.


"The captain has certain
connections at Campbell. Those connections can help or hurt me. He also
has certain ... needs."


David risked touching her
shoulder. “There was a threat implied?"


She nodded, holding back a quiet
anger.


"I understand this well. It is
not the act that bothers you so much, but the feeling that you have no
choice in the act, am I right?"


She nodded.


Why, David wondered, should the
artificial intelligence that really oversaw this starship permit such a
transparent abuse of its human master's power? But he could answer his
own question; ultimately people had insisted on a person being in
control.


He spoke. “You have an
interesting problem. For instance, if we were to present evidence to
the second in command and demand that he take over, how would we know
that the second in command is not either complicit or otherwise under
the primary's control?"


Avonford shook her head.
“We don't. What is the check on such people?"


"I think the threat of exposure
would hold much weight with him,” David told her.
“He could find himself with nowhere in settled space to go.
But to fight this would not be without risk."


"If it was just me,”
she said, “I'd raise hell. But the whole human universe is
counting on me to get this job done!"


This seemed a little much to
David, who took a longer view of things, but her sincerity and
enthusiasm were evident. He smiled and raised an eyebrow. “Is
it that important to study relativity? Why?"


"Look, if the Anderson, Lu, and
Yoseph paper is right, we can use one asteroid-sized black hole to make
more."


David shrugged. “And
then what?"


Her eyes gleamed. “Look
up Wheeler, Forward, Thornsen, and Zhau. With several black holes, we
can make some of the gravitational machines that the relativity
theorists predicted. For instance, imagine a gravitational catapult
that would send us up near the speed of light without our feeling any
acceleration at all! Imagine..."


David held up a hand. He had his
own doubts about what people might do with the fruits of the project.
But it was obviously so important to Elizabeth that she was willing to
be used for it. He was moved to concern.


"Look, we live forever these
days. If there is a setback, it can be overcome in time. Besides, who
knows where the captain's demands will stop? His behavior must be
changed, or many more women will experience what you have. I think you
must threaten to expose him. Then you will be in the driver's seat."


She raised her eyebrows.
“It can't be just my word against his, and we can't count on
the ship's AI."


David smiled. “I do
biological nanotech. I have in my room all I need for bench-level
fabrication. What we need to do is record an hour or so of conversation
with something too small and diffuse to be detected by all the usual
precautions, which I'm sure that he will take. So I make a distributed
network of nanocells. I could hide it under your skin, or in your hair."


Liz looked at him, worry in her
face, but with anger and excitement, too. She nodded, not feeling
powerless any longer.


* * * *


David met Liz again the following
evening. They listened to the recording of Avonford's noon encounter.
DeRoot had walked right into it.


"What would Gunheim do
for me if I did this?” Avonford had asked in a
totally playful and innocent voice.


"Let you run your
project, most likely,” DeRoot had said.


"And if
not?” She'd asked laughingly, but David noticed a
hint of strain.


"Well, the converse, I
would suppose. Will you take off your clothes, now?"


"Enough,” David said.
He had what he needed. She could have walked out right then, he told
himself, and if she had not ... Well, he didn't want to know.


* * * *


All locked in, Liz told herself.
They had the recording, and the evidence was already on its way to both
Earth and Campbell, encrypted, but in a way that would be released if
the AIs involved did not get positive instructions from her to not
release it. David had been very clever to come up with that insurance
policy.


In the last twenty-four hours,
she and David had developed a closeness she'd never felt before. No man
had gone to bat for her like this, and she allowed the pure warm
feeling to wash through her for a moment.


Still, she felt nervous as hell.
David might not have anticipated everything. Judi had declined to be a
part of it. She still had too much at stake. DeRoot could get back at
her without anyone being the wiser, she'd said. David had reluctantly
agreed. Besides, they had enough without her, hopefully.


They walked into the Sphere One
Commons. DeRoot, waiting for her, frowned a bit. Not expecting David,
Liz thought.


The captain recovered quickly.
“Ms. Avonford, good to see you. Mr. Levi?"


"Captain,” David said,
“I suggest that we sit down. We must discuss something with
you. I suggest you tell the AI to not record what we have to say. I
think you understand what this is about."


DeRoot frowned and pursed his
lips, then he looked at her. The threat was silent, understood.


She looked back, just as cold.
She hoped her refusal to back off was every bit as clear.


At length, DeRoot nodded.


Without any further word, David
produced a comm card and played back the segment with the incriminating
language. “We have taken the necessary and obvious
precautions, and have supporting evidence of other kinds concerning
other events, not involving anyone on this ship,” he said
afterward.


The last was a complete lie, Liz
knew, but one that might give Judi some protection.


"You will understand the
implications for both you and Mr. Gunheim,” David said.


DeRoot stared coldly at her,
ignoring David. “You goddamn whore.” His voice
rumbled in anger.


Liz stared, unable to help the
start of a tear, but willing herself not to give an inch in this
contest of wills.


No one spoke. Each looked at the
other. DeRoot's face tinged pink. David watched in amazement. Liz
valiantly worked on a poker face, wondering if this was the first time
the captain's persona and behavior had been questioned to such a
degree. He was a smart man; surely he would take this no further. Liz
watched quietly. Only when she thought the steam had gone out of DeRoot
did she glance at David.


"It's your show now,”
the younger man said.


She nodded. “Captain
DeRoot, I want your assurance, and Mr. Gunheim's, that there will be no
interference with my work in the Lacaille 9352 system in support of the
Black Hole Project."


He snorted. “That's
beyond my power."


"You had best hope
not,” Liz countered.


"It may be in the best interest
of the ship to have you two hibernating for the remainder of the
journey."


He might, Liz realized, be able
to order the ship's AI to do just that. Then, while they were totally
out of touch, any sort of revenge might be orchestrated.


"Then,” David said
calmly, “we would be unable to keep the encrypted data from
being released where we have sent it."


"A moment.” DeRoot
turned away from them and stared at a wall screen that showed stars
gliding by with the ship's rotation. They waited.


Then he turned back and smiled.
“Very well. I apologize. I'll speak to Roger and Cyan, I'm
sure there will be no problem.” He sighed.
“Eternity is a long time, and if our paths cross again,
perhaps I won't make such a mess of it."


"For the rest of this trip, don't
even think about it,” she replied.


DeRoot rolled his eyes up and
nodded. “Well, enjoy the rest of the trip, Ms. Avonford, Mr.
Levi. If you need anything from your Captain, don't hesitate to ask."


They were back on record, Liz
surmised. She nodded and led David away. As soon as they were halfway
around the tube and out of sight and sound of anything, she pulled him
close and squeezed him with all her not inconsiderable strength.


* * * *


Chapter 3


At Minot, Lacaille 9352


(Campbell) System, 5 October 2272


David couldn't help but gasp as
their shuttle exited the access tunnel into Minot, the main Campbell
system residential habitat. He, Liz, and Judi had flown in from the
south pole, where the landing docks were, into what looked like a huge
Chinese lantern, its insides filled with fields, forests, and streams.
Beside them was a snow-covered alpine terrain in the shadow of a huge
dark disk that floated ahead of them.


"That's the back end of the
secondary reflector,” their guide shouted over the hum of the
shuttle's fans.


David nodded and smiled; they'd
retracted the shuttle canopy and were sitting in the crisp open air,
feeling and smelling very much like a bright, late winter day in St.
Petersburg. The scale still overwhelmed him.


Liz Avonford grinned at him as
the crisp breeze of their flight streamed her hair behind her. His
heart beat faster, anticipating. She had long since succeeded in
convincing him that she wasn't just being grateful for helping her, but
was deeply into the erotic arts. She initiated
everything—instructed, taught, and occasionally used him to
achieve her own erotic nirvana. He worried a bit about being so totally
dominated, about just being along for the ride. But what a ride!


They nosed down and began
scudding over the sculpted, snow-covered crags of polar Minot.


"Ten minutes to
Lenore,” their guide announced.


They crossed the sun line. Rock
and gravel gave way to terraces of meadow, and soon the first trees
shot by beneath them. The vastness of the habitat spread out around
him, and he thought about Moses on the mountain, viewing the Promised
Land. That reminded him of the New Israel space colony, orbiting
Proxima, and Ben Shalom, the messianic anti-Moses who had led so many
of the orthodox to the stars. The debates about that had filled the
coffee houses of Ashqelon in David's childhood. It had been the first
of what were now over a thousand exclusive ethnic or religious
settlements among the nearby stars, and not everyone was happy about
it. Children raised in such places faced the same kinds of survival
challenges as youngsters in cults faced on Earth.


Liz touched him and pointed.


He looked in that direction and
saw a small rustic cabin by a stream between waterfalls—the
first sign of human habitation he'd seen.


"Getting warmer,” Liz
shouted. Their weight increased as they moved farther from Minot's
rotational axis, and the shuttle's fans got louder as they revved up to
carry the load.


David smelled the pine
forest—now yielding to the more deciduous trees.
“It looks a lot less settled than the space colonies around
Sol,” he shouted over the fan noise.


Liz smiled and pointed to her
head.


David opened his address.


Only about five
thousand people so far, Liz sent. L-5 Grissom has
fifty-seven million, and its area is a little smaller.


The land lay mostly flat below
them now, a calico patchwork of forests and fields, some tended by
cultivating robots.


A herd of kangaroos!
Liz noted.


Roger Gunheim is
Australian, David sent. A town is coming up. A
broad, winding river circled the inside of the habitat at its widest
part. A large clearing with wide, low, modernistic architecture lay
ahead of them on a thumb of land.


That's Lenore,
Judi sent. Named forLenore Lebois. She was
the first system exec, and she died mysteriously. I guess you have to
die to get something named for you.


Judi, what do you
think happened? Liz asked.


Gunheim had his way
with her all the way out. They'd just finished the colony when his
buddy, DeRoot, arrived with another thousand passengers. That was forty
years ago. The two of them got a council formed that made Gunheim the
executive. Lenore objected and she was found dead
in the river near the town, not three weeks after it started flowing.


Suicide? David
asked.


Ruled an accident. But
her personnel files disappeared.


This isn't all on the
net.


That's right, Judi
said. Then she leaned forward in her seat so he could hear her voice
over the buzz of the shuttle's fans. “DeRoot told me. Trying
to scare me, I think. It worked."


David shivered.


The shuttle passed over a town
that would not have appeared out of place in Australia four centuries
ago, and settled onto a well-manicured grass field. A group of
horseback riders came out to meet them with spare mounts. DeRoot, who'd
come in earlier, and Gunheim were among them along with a Eurasian
woman.


"G'day and welcome to
Lenore,” Gunheim shouted, all ebullience and smiles.
“Mount up! It's Suits-off Day; thirty-nine years since we
moved in here. There's roo on the barbie for you."


The smell of roast meat, well
seasoned and basted, wafted in a gentle breeze from the barbecue pits
along the river. Liz looked around at the fortieth celebration of
Suits-off Day. What a difference a year made! She knew most of the
people; everyone connected with something outside Minot itself along
with their friends and relatives, maybe a couple of hundred people all
together.


Liz sat at a wooden table with
her deputy, Cyan Mutori, Judi Lalande, and her son Oscar—and
David. The last looked incredibly primitive as he chewed on an emu rib.


Roger Gunheim strode up a small
hill near the tables in full outback regalia—safari shirt,
walking shorts, and a wide-brim hat with one brim buttoned to its
crown. He lifted a ridiculously large Bavarian-style mug of local brew
and shouted, “To the success of all our projects!”
Then he flipped the cap back and chugged.


Liz laughed, lifted her much
smaller glass of Lenore stout, and took a sip. The reflection of
Campbell, as much a heat lamp as a light, warmed her skin.


As BHP director, her project for
the last year had been to supervise some twenty people scattered around
various asteroids and to make key architecture decisions for their busy
but not-all-that-creative robot laborers. The fabrication of the
impactor was ahead of schedule, and the combined power/beam modules
were on a schedule that had at least some margin. They'd become like a
family—all dedicated to accomplishing the greatest human
project since terraforming Mars.


With one exception.


"Gotta lid on Terry Peal?"Judi
asked.


Liz laughed. That particular
exception was more interested in setting robot armies one against the
other than in mining. He'd also been spouting anti-project propaganda
to anyone who'd listen. “He's been eased aside, and others
have taken up the slack. We're on schedule."


Here comes da boss, Judi
warned.


"G'day, mind if I join you?"


Liz looked up at Gunheim.
“You shot this?” gesturing at her roast kangaroo.


"With a cross bow. A fair shot
and it was near the end of its natural life span,” Gunheim
told her.


Oscar looked confused and moved
closer to his mother.


David tossed his head.
“When deer become old and feeble, they hurt a lot. That is
where hunters come in and end suffering. It is either hunters or
wolves, I think."


"Oh,” Oscar said, with
a furtive glance at Gunheim.


"You have wolves here?”
Liz asked.


Judi looked at Liz. With
Gunheim's kind around, you don't need wolves.


Liz frowned. As far as she could
see, Gunheim was all glad-handing and bluster; a little shallow, but
harmless.


"Dingoes, it would be. But we
haven't introduced large predators yet, mate, and may not for a while.
The grass contains a weak contraceptive, so the herds grow more
slowly,” Gunheim said. “Well, I didn't come over
here to talk about hunting. Liz, we're a kind of family around here."


"Great to be part of
it,” Liz said, feeling all warm and relaxed with the stout. A
splash from the shore caught her attention; shorts and halters littered
the riverbank beach and shouts of laughter and splashes beckoned her.
She'd worn a red towel kilt and matching halter and was beginning to
feel overdressed.


Gunheim nodded and beamed, but
his eyes were sharp. “Well, in families one shares, and,
well, the council and I think it's time to share a little of your
workload, let some others get some more of the action."


Liz couldn't believe what she'd
just heard. The warm fuzzy feeling evaporated almost instantly,
replaced with a cold knot in her stomach. She smiled weakly and tried
to hide her feelings. “I'm not exactly overworked."


Gunheim shrugged.
“Well, maybe it's just that some other very capable people
have been under worked. At any rate, there's been some friction, and
whenever anything like that happens, those of us who are in charge have
to make some response, tweak the organization, do something of that
nature, just to let people know we're on the job."


Liz suddenly felt naked and cold.


The table fell silent, everyone
looking at Gunheim.


"Now don't take this too
personally. I don't think anyone can really fault you for doing
something about Terry Peal and his bloody robot wars, but you're pretty
young yet, and sometimes it takes a little more subtlety to keep
everyone happy."


"Chaos, how subtle did I have to
be! I just let Ivan Marenkov take over the stuff Peal wasn't doing
anyway."


Gunheim shook his head.
“And you left him off the production achievement list."


"But he wasn't producing."


"You could have lowered the
threshold instead of bloody humiliating him.” Gunheim's last
few words had a bit of snap in them. “But then,” he
went back to his avuncular style, “these are things some
experience brings. You're doing fair on the impactor fabrication now so
we thought we might let you concentrate on that and let Mutori take
over the people management chores."


"You don't understand, Mr.
Gunheim,” Liz said, trying to keep a mixture of anger and
fear out of her voice. “My sister, Dr. Zhau Tse Wen, and the
whole project expect me to see that the efforts in this system are
completed on schedule. When you come down to it, the BHP is why this
colony exists at all. I can't just walk away from
that!"


"And you aren't. The decision has
been taken out of your hands, so you aren't breaking any promises. No
worries."


Liz shot a look at Cyan Mutori,
who smiled sympathetically, but said nothing. Judi left the table with
her son so quietly that Liz didn't realize she was gone. David sat
openmouthed. He was running the biosurvey on the asteroid that would
soon impact Martin and was, she knew, very vulnerable to what had just
occurred to her.


Payback time,
Judi sent. He just needed an excuse.


* * * *


A wave of rain clouds spiraling
down from the south pole darkened the sky over Liz's dome, transparent
when not in use as a display screen. Under it was her one-room office,
kitchen, bedroom, and entertainment center; a small, high-tech outhouse
hid behind some shrubbery. In actuality, the shrubbery formed the walls
of her abode; in the tropical climate of the low latitudes of Minot, an
occasional splash of warm rain was an easily acceptable trade for the
feeling of openness and freedom this style of living gave her.


But not today. Noon and still in
bed, Liz lay under the sheets, head in the pillow, reliving every
moment of her life from when she decided to go down to that rogue
kuiperoid in the Solar System, to losing her office, to staring at
DeRoot's ancient Greek computer while he used her body. At least that
had been partly voluntary; a choice, a trade. This time she had been
truly raped without a stitch of clothing touched—utterly
humiliated in front of her friends in a format so public and genteel
that she couldn't even have thought of screaming.


Well, she could scream now! Out
in the woods over a kilometer from the nearest other home, she spun in
her bed, flung her arms out, and screamed a nameless, primal scream
until her throat hurt.


"Liz?"


She caught her breath and
screamed again.


"Liz, are you okay?"


It was David. Chaos, she was no
mood to be social.


"Are you okay?"


"Does it sound like
it?” she snapped, and regretted it. Suddenly, she didn't want
to be alone. “Oh, come on in."


He came through the short
entrance maze and walked under the dome rim just as large gray
raindrops began to splash all over it, drumming in a way that made it
sound like more of a storm than it was. She got up to meet him and
collapsed on him, sobbing.


He held her until she collected
herself.


Finally, when her face had dried
and she'd started thinking again, he disengaged slightly and put a hand
on her chin. “Liz, it has been three days. Have you eaten
anything?"


Three days? She could still taste
the emu in her mouth.


"We are all concerned,”
David said, “but we are being very circumspect. Mutori wants
you to know she had no idea this would happen. Judi is terrified."


"I haven't had a message from her
since..."


David nodded. “We think
Gunheim is monitoring bioradio. One wrong move and Oscar is in cold
sleep on the next starship to his father. Look, I'm
uncomfortable.” He waved his hands around him and smiled
wryly. “What do you do about bugs in here?"


"All the insects here are
genetically engineered to avoid human pheromones so I don't
need...” Liz thought about the other kind of bugs, then
shrugged her shoulders. “Oh. You want to take a walk in the
rain?"


David smiled and nodded. The rain
was warm and the forest was full of wonderful, wet fragrances. About a
hundred meters along the path to the river, he turned to her.


"Okay,” she said, to
herself as much as to David. “What are my options?"


"Your options? For what?"


"To get back in charge of the
project. To put Gunheim in his place. To get my life back."


"Brainstorm?"


"Yeah. Let's have some ideas.
Everything on the table. I could kill the bastard. Don't look at me
that way; we'll deselect later. Maybe we could just kidnap him, put him
on ice until after the impactor flies."


David shrugged but didn't look
very encouraging.


"Okay. Am I good in bed? Good
enough so that someone as experienced as Gunheim would do stuff for me?"


"Liz, you are not serious..."


"It's on the table."


"I am not experienced enough to
know. You are only my third lover and it is hard for me to tell."


"Well, it's on the table, anyway."


"As a last measure, I hope."


Liz laughed. “If that.
Now, could I invoke authority?"


"Earth is a long way away."


"But life is a lot longer these
days. Twenty-five years, back and forth, can go just like that. Does he
really want to have the most powerful people in the Galaxy pissed off
at him forever?"


David shook his head.
“If he were rational, I would think not. Okay, on the
table.” He grinned at her.


"That's the spirit.”
How was it that she was now cheering him up?


"We could try blackmail again. It
worked once."


They looked at each other.


"For a while,” they
said almost simultaneously, and laughed.


"Back to the authority
option,” David said. “Gunheim is not an absolute
authority here. He must answer to a council."


Liz shook her head.
“Which has been very compliant, it seems."


"We could at least argue the
case. Show his relationship to DeRoot and their history. We put all the
facts before them. They are people."


"They are Gunheim's people."


David shrugged. “That
does not mean that their brains have ceased to work. Anyway, they are
the ultimate authority here."


Liz shook her head. They were not
the ultimate authority. “David, they are elected. He doesn't
have to control ten people, he has to control ten thousand! If I can
get an election called, the AI will recognize the electorate as the
ultimate human authority. He won't be able to fix it."


David frowned.
“Perhaps. But are you suggesting a frontal public assault?
That burns any hope of making any of the other options work. It would
be a gamble."


"But a clean, open gamble. We can
expose him and DeRoot."


"Liz, he is a good politician.
Somehow, I think, you will end up looking like a dirty whore. And many
people who agree with you will not be able to say so publicly. Judi and
myself, for instance."


"You won't back me?"


"I can't. I would lose my
project. I am taking great risks even talking to you about it."


"But you are talking."


He nodded. “There are
people here he can't threaten so easily, and people who remember
Lenore...."


* * * *


Three weeks later, in Liz's now
certified bug-free home environment, David glanced at the latest
projections, displayed in various graphs on her dome. The good news was
that in plastering the truth about DeRoot and Gunheim's escapades all
over the colony, Liz had gotten two council members to support her and
enough signatures on an election petition to start a campaign. Out of a
hundred and fifty supporters, she found enough candidates for a reform
slate that, if elected, would control the Campbell system governing
council. That had gotten the AI to override DeRoot on monitoring
political activity. The bad news was that Liz had, at best, maybe
twenty percent support. Forty-six percent of the electorate either
thought she was a troublemaker or didn't believe the charges at all,
and thirty-four percent didn't know what to think, or weren't saying.


"Liz?” Cyan Mutori's
voice rang out from outside the hedge. That she was using voice instead
of net was interesting, David mused.


Liz nodded to him. He got up and
slipped quietly into the nearby woods. Cyan Mutori was probably the
last person who should know he was actively helping Liz in her
campaign. Gunheim had made it very clear to him that while he
recognized, with a wink, David's personal relationship to Liz, any
public attacks from David would, in Gunheim's words, “be a
mite disruptive to your research program, mate."


"Hello, Cyan. Come on
in,” Liz said when he was safely out of sight. Her voice
carried clearly in the still evening. “How's the project
going?"


David felt for Liz. Gunheim's
next move, of course, had been to remove Liz from her remaining role as
impactor fabrication specialist.


"I would like David to hear what
I have to say,” Cyan said. “I understand the
precautions you take. I am not offended."


David was startled. Had she seen
him? Or did she just reason he would be here? There was much more to
Cyan Mutori than one realized.


"Come on back, David,”
Liz said.


He reappeared from the woods.


Cyan nodded to him, with no hint
of a smile or a frown. She wore a green sarong with white flowers and a
white orchid in her long, jet-black hair—South Pacific,
squared. She'd even browned her skin somehow; lamps, probably, David
thought. Campbell didn't put out enough ultraviolet light to make a tan.


"Physically, the project is a
little behind schedule, but okay,” Cyan began.


"Behind?” he asked.


"Deliberate delays, I think. If I
counter them completely, I may be removed because these delays
represent the will of someone powerful.” Cyan shut her eyes
for a moment, then opened them. “But if I let them become too
great, the project will be in jeopardy, and I will be the scapegoat. It
is a very delicate situation."


David shook his head.
“You are risking a lot. Look, as I understand it, the worst
thing that can happen is that if we don't launch, the other impactors
get diverted, and thirty years later we all try again. It's not worth a
whole lot of suffering. Pun not intended."


Liz shook her head.
“David, I don't know that human politics will allow another
chance. The project takes too much discipline and it's too visible.
Every one of the launch sites has to be able to push the project
through at the same time, without any more coordination than a
quarter-century round trip communications delay. We have to do it here
if we possibly can."


"Liz, you're fixated,”
David countered.


Cyan shook her head.
“Liz, David. Gunheim is not trying to stop the project. He
has, I think, something worse in mind, and that is why I am here."


Liz turned to her and stared.
“What could be worse?"


"He came to me yesterday with a
question. ‘Now,’ he asks, ‘if one
impactor hits a little less hard than the other three impactors, there
would be a little momentum bias in the final product, wouldn't there
be?'” Mutori shook her head. “He does not
understand several things."


Liz said nothing, but stared at
Mutori, shock all over her face.


"What?” David said,
uncertainly. “He has done simulations, of course."


Liz looked at him, whitefaced.
“You can't just ‘do’ simulations. You
have to know when approximations are good enough and when you need
another couple of days of number crunching. And,” she paused,
“there is still too much we don't know about how matter
behaves at such energies and densities. It's hard enough to do a
symmetrical zero-biased simulation. Chaos only can tell what would
happen if something was even as much as a nanosecond off."


Mutori shook her head.
“He is talking momentum, Liz. Hitting at the right time but
with just a little less momentum. A slight amount of momentum bias
would send the hole back this way, where he could gain control over it.
He would then have, I think, very great power."


David gave her a blank look,
consulted the net, frowned grimly, and said, “Oh."


"Power, literally and
figuratively,” Liz said. “David, this isn't just
about me and my job anymore. The reason Hilda sent me out here was
because I'd be absolutely loyal to her and ensure that everything be
done exactly right. I don't mean to insult you, Cyan. You're a good
person. But the project needed that certainty. Humanity needed that
certainty."


Cyan looked down. “I
took entirely too local a view of things. I compromised. I am sorry."


David tried to digest what he
heard. “Gunheim. In charge of a black hole!"


Liz snorted. “That's
hardly the worst case. One other thing that might happen is that the
hole comes jetting this way. If it doesn't have enough mass, it might
be ready to explode in a final burst of Hawking radiation, converting
millions of tons of mass into hard radiation in a fraction of a second.
Perhaps right in our faces."


"It sounds like a good argument
for not trying this at all. What if someone else has the same idea?
Maybe we should shut it down."


"David!” Liz sounded
horrified.


He gave her a lopsided grin.
“Just thinking out loud. Okay, I'll give up my project and
support your reform slate publicly. Do we have any more options?"


"Black hole formation is not all
that Gunheim does not understand. I think he thinks I will want to
share his power with him—that I will be his compliant partner
in exploiting the black hole and ... in other ways."


David looked at her
expressionless face. Why am I surprised, he thought.


"I came to make an
apology,” Cyan said. “I shall make my apology in
this way. I am local, a first colonist. Some think that by watching
much, and saying little, I have leadership qualities. So like David, I
will sacrifice my position, and I shall run for the council on your
reform slate as its leader. That may change the political dynamics in
some small way. If I am so lucky as to be chosen by our people and the
council as System Executive, I shall give the project back to you, Liz.
Will you accept such an offering?"


"Cyan!"


David watched the two women
embrace—his eyes riveted to the beauty of it. Much later
David realized what he'd been witness to. That demure, self-effacing,
shy speech by the achingly beautiful, vulnerable Cyan Mutori might
prove to be one of the most devastatingly effective power grabs in the
history of any democracy.


* * * *


Chapter 4


At Minot, 15 March 2274


Liz stared at the poll numbers
floating in the air. Cyan's slate was still marginally ahead, but...


"The undecided have the real
lead,” David remarked.


"People don't want to contribute
to a bandwagon effect, whoever they support,” Judi said,
while throwing a Frisbee to her son, Oscar.


"A bandwagon would be fine with
me,” Liz said.


Liz, this is Cyan.


Liz pointed to her head, letting
the others know she was getting a transmission. Go ahead.


We have a problem out
on Canning. Terry Peal went off the deep end.


Liz registered the name with a
start. The robot wars guy? What's he done?


He kidnapped a dozen
people in a construction shack. He has decided the Black Hole Project
is a bad idea and should be shut down. There may be some political
pressure to do that if people's lives are at risk.


Crap, Liz
replied. Are the people really in danger?


Our psychometric
filter has Peal at eight out of ten on the Kaczynski-McVeigh scale. He
could think those who do not agree with him, or simply work on the
project, are morally complicit or can be sacrificed. We must do
something immediately. Unfortunately, I think I will need to stay here
because of the politics. Would it be possible for you to go to Canning
and deal with this as my emissary?


Liz touched the net
quickly—the KM scale had been around since the twenty-first
century and measured a propensity for rationalized violence. Peal
sounded like a problem that needed fixing, but...


Cyan, I'm not,
officially, part of the mining operation anymore.


You are now. This is
an emergency. You know Peal.


Gunheim will unappoint
me fast, and maybe you, too!


I do not think he
would do anything so arbitrary during the campaign. He would, however,
make me pay for it if I am not successful. You are the most logical
choice because you have the greatest commitment. Also, having you
involved may make Roger angry, and angry men sometimes act unwisely, to
the profit of their opponents.


Now or never, Liz thought. I'm
on my way. Liz out.


"What was that?” David
asked.


Liz pursed her lips. How much
should she say now? “Terry Peal again. David, have you ever
heard of a couple of psychiatrists named Kaczynski and McVeigh? There's
a scale relating to antisocial conflict..."


David's eyes went wide.
“Liz, Kaczynski and McVeigh were not psychiatrists."


Liz felt another chill.


"Twentieth century American
political killers,” Judi said. “Liz, what gives?"


She told them. “David,
can you arrange a shuttle to Canning for me?"


He nodded. “What do you
have in mind?"


"Making a hero out of myself."


"How?"


"Don't know yet, but I'll have to
do it there. I'll need to get on my way before Gunheim figures it
out.” She gave him a brief embrace and started trotting for
the Lenore Landing Field.


It took her forty precious
minutes to get a fan car, then another twenty for it to glide its way
to the north pole port facility. When her fan car arrived at the port
facility, the human attendant was grinning ear to ear.


Her heart jumped. The man worked
for Gunheim. Was she already too late?


"I get a nice break today, it
seems. You've got the last shuttle."


"Really,” Liz said,
wondering how close they'd come to disaster.


"Dr. Lalande's people just
reserved all the others for various astronomical missions. Something
about getting a wide baseline for a predicted supernova in a Fornax
dwarf galaxy."


All right, Judi! Liz quickly
wiped off her smile, nodded smartly, and climbed into the spacecraft.


* * * *


Liz catnapped and watched the
Canning news feed on her thirty-hour journey.


Gunheim's handpicked team was at
least twelve hours behind her—Cyan had managed to hold things
back for almost two hours, and it had taken another nine hours to get
an interplanetary shuttle.


Liz followed the news for a
while. The politics had gone as predicted with Gunheim criticizing Cyan
for mismanagement and Cyan patiently explaining how things had
developed—making sure the media
‘uncovered’ how Peal had used Gunheim's influence
to amass a lot of robotic parts with little oversight. Gunheim had
started talking about project fanaticism on the part of some people and
how human life had to come first and how everything had to be on the
table as long as people's lives were at stake. Cyan had quietly asked
just how much people were willing to be governed by terrorists.


* * * *


It was late at night when Canning
Base spaceport passenger-access-tube snaked its way to Liz's shuttle.
The only one to meet her at the inner door was Todd
“Mac” MacGregor, a nervous, sandy-haired young
medic whose wife was one of the hostages.


"Why,” he asked,
“is this impactor schedule so damn important?"


Liz bit her lip and answered
carefully. “The impactor your people are making,”
Liz explained, “has to match perfectly the other impactors in
density and dimension as well as velocity to produce the necessary
symmetry at the impact point. It's slow work, even for robots, and once
our margin is used up, no way to make up the time. Peal has cut off the
flow of iron to its assemblers, so we've already lost most of the
margin. Further delay could ruin the efforts of thousands of people
over the last four decades."


"My wife..."


Liz shook her head. “If
he gets away with this, it will just be something else next time. We
have to deal with it now."


"How? Peal's a master of robot
technology."


Her mind suddenly clicked.
“That's it! Mac..."


"What?"


"Technology. He'd look for a
technological assault, not a physical one! I could offer to exchange
myself for as many hostages as he's willing to let go. Once I'm in ...
he's low-gee soft and maybe thirty kilos overweight. I train to one
gee. I could take him out with my bare hands."


The young medic looked aghast.
“And maybe you'll get yourself killed! He has robots and the
ability to get around the laws of robotics."


Liz nodded, almost surprised at
herself. “He's got the project by the throat, and I promised
I'd get it done. It's worth taking the chance.” Liz stared at
him a moment and made a decision. “Mac, can you give me an
edge?” There was a drug, she knew, that would give a person
“hysterical” strength, enough to lift beams off
people crushed in a structure collapse, or pull open a locked door to
safety.


"A gamma stimulant? They're
illegal..."


"They're for emergencies. This is
an emergency."


He tightened his lips, then said,
“Okay, it's worth a try. You getting killed wouldn't put my
wife in any more danger, and might get her out right away.”
He paused and nodded, apparently making up his mind. “Wait a
moment. I need to get the drug myself instead of ordering it the usual
way. Peal has probably compromised the system, and we don't want to
make him suspicious."


The moment turned into several
minutes—precious minutes in which either Peal or Gunheim
might do something to make what she planned impossible. Finally, Mac
returned. He held out a small blue capsule to her, and she took it in
her hand. It stuck to her.


"Geckro surface. You can hide it
in your mouth and it will stay put. Bite it hard when you need it.
You'd better get going."


Liz nodded in acknowledgement.
“Don't tell Cyan until I'm in.” She turned and
headed for the Canning base airlock.


* * * *


Three hours later, Liz came
through an airlock and faced Peal. She'd gotten seven hostages freed in
exchange for herself—not as many as she'd
hoped—before she went in. The remaining hostages were in the
back of the lounge module Peal had occupied, normally a place for crews
to take a break from vacuum work. It was essentially a spacecraft with
everything but a propulsion system. The chunky, beady-eyed man stared
back at her, his mouth set, looking for all the world like a rebellious
teenager. A dull-finished utilitarian humanoid robot, anatomically
correct in one important feature, stood quietly beside him. Peal's sick
sense of humor, she thought. The hostages were in plain view sitting on
a couch and chairs in the room behind him. The hostages weren't bound,
but Peal had erected a transparent barrier between their part of the
lounge and his. There were handcuffs on the table in front of them.


A hummingbird-sized robot hovered
about her on nearly silent fans, undoubtedly probing for anything
technological down to the size limit of autonomous robotics. Steady,
girl, Liz told herself as she let herself be inspected.


"Okay, you pass,” Peal
finally said. “So here we have one of these would-be gods
that want to play with universes! Do you feel godlike now?"


He wanted to humiliate her! Maybe
she could play that angle. “Let these people go, please. Then
I'll do whatever you want."


Peal laughed. “Really?
Wu and Markovitch, get your suits on and get out of here. Simmons and
MacGregor, you stay for now."


Mac's wife was a petite brunette,
her face a mask of determined calm.


"Everyone, Peal. Please."


"No. I may want some more fun
later. Are you going to keep your bargain?"


Liz bit her lip. She didn't want
anyone else around but, she told herself, the gain was worth the risk.
“Okay. What do you want?"


He leered at her. “Take
your shipsuit off. Put a set of handcuffs on and come in here."


Liz complied. The handcuffs
clicked ever so softly as she shut them around her wrists. The material
felt like basalt fiber composite—the standard 3D lithography
material. It was strong enough, but brittle, she thought.


When she got the cuffs on, a
section of the barrier slid aside.


"Come in,” Peal said
with a grin. As she reached the opening in the barrier, the humanoid
robot began to move toward her. “A modification of the
virtual reality glove. What it feels, I feel. Now turn around. Do you
know what ‘black hole’ means in Russian?"


Now or never, Liz thought. She
bit down on the capsule as she complied with Peal's order, moving back
against the barrier as she did so. She shivered to elevate her heart
rate and hyperventilated. Strength flowed into her. Steady, she told
herself, thirty seconds for maximum effect. She felt her muscles quiver
in preparation.


"So you think you're going to
play with the universe, do you?"


This wasn't going to be easy.
Okay, she thought. She'd never get to Peal before the robot got to her,
take the robot first. She allowed it to close the distance. Then, with
a scream, she snapped her arms outward as hard as she could and fell
back against the barrier. The handcuffs cracked open and the line
holding them together pulled out of the right one. The pain was
blinding but somehow detached from her. The robot snapped toward her
almost faster than could be seen, but her right leg was already up to
meet it. Her heel hit right in its mechanical pelvis, and she felt
searing pain as something snapped in her leg. Damn, Hilda, I tried. I
really tried, she thought.


But in a second she realized she
wasn't done yet. The robot had rebounded from the collision and was
sailing across the room in the low gravity. Before it could bounce and
get back, she launched herself at the startled Peal, ignoring the pain
in her leg.


No time for fancy stuff. Her
balled fist caught him squarely in the jaw, going through it as if it
were balsa. Her momentum crashed them both into the mini galley at the
end of the room, a coffee pot bouncing away, spewing hot liquid all
over. The impact knocked the breath out of her. Already she was
beginning to feel lightheaded and tired; but the robot would be back
for her. She whirled Peal's limp body around to put him between her and
the robot.


The machine crashed into them and
bounced away, inanimate.


Dead man switch? A look at what
was left of Peal's head told the story. There was gray matter on her
fist. She shook it off automatically, revulsed.


Boost and adrenaline spent, the
pain from a broken leg and broken wrist hit her hard. She felt
nauseated, and fainted. The last thing she remembered was the smell of
spilled coffee.


* * * *


When Liz regained consciousness a
week later, her wounds were healed, she was a hero and Cyan Mutori was
the new chief executive of the Campbell system. Roger Gunheim had left
the Campbell system with DeRoot and some of their cronies, bound for
the BHP vertex to see the implosion, and then onto a new colony at
Stein 2051, twenty-five light years distant.


* * * *


Chapter 5


In Space, at the Impactor Launch
Site, 26 October 2275


The impactor looked like a long
thin filament that seemed to run out to infinity. At high
magnification, David could see a slight texture to it; individually
controlled superconducting solenoid rings were placed every few meters
to stretch the wire taut to just the right tension, giving it some
rigidity for maneuvers and providing a fine control on its density.
Somewhere, out there toward the end of the rod, was the main magnetic
reflector. Any time now, David thought.


Cyan's term as chief executive
had begun well. The impactor launch was back on schedule, albeit with
the smallest of windows. No more delays could be tolerated, but so far,
so good. He, Judi, Cyan, and Liz took a shuttle out to the launch site,
a point, high over the asteroid belt, where the impactor coasted,
waiting for the main beam. While far from the revelry, they had all
wanted to, well, be there.


David wondered when they would
see it light up.


As if on queue, Liz announced,
“About now."


At the far distant end of the
impactor, a tiny blue star appeared and gradually grew to an iridescent
flower, brighter and brighter with its far edges fading into a deep
violet.


In the close-up optics, the
impactor began to move across the field of view. Faster and faster it
went. The view zoomed back.


It was bright enough now that
David risked a look at Campbell and the ring of beam projectors around
it. Only a few of them were active at this early stage, he knew, but
already the power was a million times that used to launch a starship.
And it would grow by many orders of magnitude over the next nine
months. By that time, he would be deeply into analyzing the results of
the planetoid's impending impact on Martin.


He felt Liz's arms around him and
smiled. Time enough for work later. Her face was glowing—he
kissed her. Cyan Mutori glanced at them and looked away.


They watched for an hour or so,
until the violet flower had faded into the interstellar depths. Then
their shuttle turned back for Minot.


Once home, David put his full
energies into his own projects. To the victors went the spoils, David
thought. His work, which he'd worried about losing altogether, was now
getting high priority; such was his reward for backing the winners.


An urgent message awaited
him—results from his Prospector Probes deep in the icy mantle
of Martin. They'd struck water. No question about it; 11.36 kilometers
under the ice surface was a huge lake, filling the bed of an ancient
caldera. No, he thought, not all that ancient. Martin must not be
completely stone cold. There was some tidal stress from its eccentric
orbit, and its radioactive ores still put out a fair amount of heat. It
had to get out somewhere, and the readings pointed to several vents
across the bottom of the lake. There could be life down there, he
thought.


It hit him in the gut. Oh, God!
If Martin had water and heat, then ... his imagination ran wild.


Far from being the agent of a
temporary rebirth of this planet, the impending collision might mean
the destruction of one of the perhaps six independently evolved
biologies known.


* * * *


Liz stared up at the sky in her
dome with restless anticipation. She touched the net to check the
countdown ... 1205013 seconds ... about two standard weeks ... the
particle projectors would finish their job—and hers. Then
what?


A beep on her comm sounded. A
message from David in his new lab.


"Liz, come over, please. I need
your help!"


She found him staring at a
micrograph of a rock sample brought up from a deep borehole on the
planetoid falling toward Martin. He hadn't noticed her coming in, but
instead continued to stare at the dark rock. She found herself staring
at it, too.


Liz saw a number of what looked
like tiny microbes, squirming around. “From the
planetoid?” she asked.


"Liz?” They kissed
cheek to cheek, not on the mouth, Liz noted. He was all business.


"The center of the planetoid is
now above the melting point of water. It would be boiling in a near
vacuum; but here and there, the vapor can't get out fast enough, and
the pressure rises to the point where liquid water exists. They thaw
out once every hundred and eighty-three thousand years, and they're
thriving, for the last time."


"In the wild anyway. What are
they?” she asked.


"Archeae. Almost eighty percent
identical to those in the Solar System and thirteen other star systems.
Their cell membranes use left-handed glycerols, their DNA forms loops
instead of the strings capped with telomeres that we use, plus some
other things. They're rugged; that's why so many of them are
extremophiles."


Liz looked at him quizzically.


"For one thing, their DNA doesn't
wear out."


"Wow! Neat.” She knew
the whole astrobiology team was in a race to study every facet of the
colliding worlds before the collision destroyed the planetoid and
utterly transformed Martin as well.


"Expected. We find them on
Martin, too, and on that planetoid you found back in the Solar System.
But there is something else in some of the volcanically-warmed lakes on
Martin: multicellular Archeae with knobby-loop DNA. See?"


Liz couldn't tell if the stringy
stuff she was looking at were loops or not, but they appeared to have
knots in them.


"God knows how long these little
critters have survived protected by that layer of ice, Liz. We'll
probably never know their earliest beginnings. What could they have
shown us?"


Liz squeezed his hand.
“I think they've shown us that life is everywhere."


He squeezed her hand back.
“I need your help badly, Liz."


"How?"


"I know I was against changing
the planetoid's trajectory originally. But I did not know about the
knobby DNA then. We have to stop the collision."


"What? David? How? The BHP
impactor needs the entire array output for the next ten days. And look
at the simulations. Even if we were to turn the array on the planetoid
now, without time for any preparation there's no guarantee it would
accomplish anything."


"There must be a way! That is
your field. Give us a chance to study Martin biology in situ!"


Liz shook her head.
“I'm truly sorry, David."


He looked at her, anguish written
all over his face. “That is all I get? ‘I'm
sorry?’”


Liz felt torn. “David,
my job is to make sure the impactor gets exactly what it needs. There
are three other impactors headed for the experiment site. If any one of
them is off, a half century of work goes down the drain. I can't think
of anything we can do at this point that wouldn't jeopardize that. But
I'll ask the staff. Anyway, the geometry is wrong; the planetoid's
trajectory is in the local ecliptic plane, so half the array is blocked
by the other half. The gap is on the one side, and Martin blocks the
other side. We won't be able to get a significant push on the planetoid
for another three days in any event. Maybe you'll have enough samples
by then."


He abruptly got up. “I
need a break."


She took his hand and held it
tightly.


"Make it enough time, Liz,
please,” he said. “I am going out to the remote lab
to do what I can."


* * * *


Three weeks later, David greeted
Liz at his remote lab deep inside the only natural satellite of Martin,
and gave her a quick tour. The moon was a captured nickel-iron asteroid
about seventy kilometers by fifty by thirty. Robots had hollowed out a
500-meter spherical cavity deep beneath the surface. They also built a
rotating drum that was 200 meters in radius to provide enough gravity
to keep the researchers’ bones solid and to settle the
various fluids of life in and outside the isolation lab. Construction
was still going on, and people were working out of cubicles. Plantings
and roofs would come later, he explained.


She looked grim and troubled, he
thought—and steeled himself for bad news. He showed her a
seat in a bare cubicle he used as a staff conference room. Cyan Mutori
was on screen, seated with a couple of council members and three or
four people he thought might be project engineers. Cyan looked as
poised as ever, with no hint as to the position she might take. He took
a deep breath.


Cyan started. “David,
for those of us who are not exobiologists, perhaps you could start this
conversation with a little background."


"Thank you, Cyan. We have found
multicellular life on Martin. Worms actually, primitive, but with a
pass-through tube for a gut and the beginnings of a primitive nervous
system. We suspect there are more complicated life-forms."


The lightspeed delay between the
lab and Minot was almost a minute. It seemed more like an hour.
Finally, the people on his screen reacted with a murmur, but it was not
as loud as he'd hoped for.


He tried again. “You
must understand the importance of this. We have found the first
multicelled life-form that humanity has ever found off-Earth."


Another minute, more murmur.


Cyan beamed at him.
“David, this is great news, and your team is to be
congratulated for all their hard work. Wouldn't everyone agree?"


Louder murmuring and
congratulations poured toward him. “Could we have some
additional perspective of your discovery?"


Gehenna. What else could he tell
them? He spread his arms. “Look, it's a given that all the
life we know spawned from single cells. That's the beginning. What we
have here are multicelled organisms. So the problem to investigate is:
Where did they evolve? Near the thermal vents at the bottom of the
lakes on Martin, or somewhere else? And if so, why were they able to
survive on this particular planet?"


Liz leaned forward.
“These life-forms may have come from someplace else?"


He had expected his good news
would set everyone's enthusiasm on fire. Instead he was getting polite
questions.


"They have loop DNA like
terrestrial extremophiles, but with these knobby kinks in it, so we
aren't sure whether they are descended from Archeae. We could have
another, entirely different architecture of life floating around the
galaxy. But the gene trace diagrams indicate a recent origin, pointing
toward a development unique to Martin. I'm betting that life for these
worms started right on this planet."


Another wait, then someone else
asked, “Have you looked into the geologic history of this
planet enough to be able to substantiate this thesis?"


He shook his head. “We
do not have data enough to decide one way or the other. We need more
bore holes, more lakes, and more samples. We need an intact planet on
which to do this."


"But we don't have the
time,” Liz said simply.


He shot her a look, then looked
back to Mutori. “That's where you all come in. We have to
divert the incoming planetoid. It would be nice if this could be done
without affecting the Black Hole Project, but this has to take priority.


"Look, I've studied the project
plans and there is some margin built in. The impactors lock into
beacons as they approach the impact point and start exchanging vectors.
They can all decelerate a little to recover synchronicity if one is a
little off. We can make up the total momentum after diverting the
planetoid and let the impactor control system get things back in sync
again. But even if that doesn't work, would it really matter if it
takes another century to make a black hole? This is something that may
never come our way again."


Liz shook her head. “I
can't endorse that approach. What if we aren't the only ones with some
kind of problem? Yes, there is some margin, but not enough to cover
things if all four impactors make changes as big as we are
contemplating here. We can't just grab all the margin of error for
ourselves. We have to put that impactor on exactly the prescribed
profile if we humanly can."


After the lightspeed delay, a
project engineer shook his head. “It would be better to
destroy the impactor and start over again than to be slightly off. A
great many things could happen with an asymmetric impact, some of them
very dangerous indeed, and to people other than ourselves."


Cyan Mutori nodded gravely.


David's heart sank. They just
couldn't see how important it was! Of course not, he thought. They were
mostly physical scientists and engineers. They had different values.
Against all logic, he searched Cyan's face for a hopeful sign, but her
face, of course, gave nothing away.


There were more questions and
answers, but in reality everyone was well informed. This was not a
question of facts, but one of value and perspective. His, he realized,
were not theirs.


One of the council members made a
motion to adjourn without acting on the diversion proposal. They voted
silently.


Finally, Cyan looked at him.
“The consensus of the Council is to continue with the
original mission plan. We'll put all available resources into getting
as large a physical sample of pre-collision Martin as we can, right up
to the last minute. I am sorry, David, but it is the best we can do for
you. I know human team members will want to stay until the last minute,
so we need to be fairly firm about getting them off. Please inform
everyone that all human team members should plan to be off of Martin
within twenty-four hours of impact, for safety."


David nodded dumbly and sighed.
“I understand. Thank you for considering this. Since there is
so little time, I should get back to work."


* * * *


Liz went jogging. The track
circled the small habitat—if you ran spinward you were
heavier. She ran spinward—punishing her body helped with the
frustration. They had enough power to divert the planetoid now, but no
way to couple that power efficiently to the planetoid. It would require
engineering a new reflector to couple the beam's momentum to the
planetoid. But if they waited until they could get one installed, it
would take so much power that the project would be compromised. The
dilemma seemed to have no solution.


David, of course, would never
understand that. Liz continued going in circles, mentally and
physically. Finally exhausted, she stopped at the locker room,
showered, dressed, and headed back to David's quarters.


David wasn't there.


* * * *


David stowed his Martin suit and
a big duffel bag behind a bulkhead, then geckroed his feet by the
airlock as the last shuttle from Martin's surface docked. His course
was settled, but he wanted to make sure no one else would be harmed. He
waved to them as they came out of the access tube and pulled themselves
down the corridor, accompanied by robots pulling bags of samples and
gear. They all smelled of dust from the surface.


"Is everyone off the planet
now?” David asked the last one off, a stocky man named Ned Oh.


He nodded. “Everyone's
here and accounted for."


"Very good. I will try to get
back before departure for Minot, but if not, go ahead without me; I may
be some time, and can take this shuttle back."


Ned looked at David oddly, then
smiled. “You? Late?"


David forced a smile.
“The collision apparently will not be
late, and there is still much to do."


Ned patted him on the shoulder;
the lack of an effort to divert the planetoid had been a downer for all
of them. They shook hands, and Ned followed his group down the corridor.


David boarded the shuttle and
stowed his gear. Settling at the controls, he contacted the busy port
manager. “I need to make a fast trip down to the surface.
There is a last minute discovery at a new ice lake."


The man, tall and light haired
with a bushy mustache and an easygoing manner, squinted and smiled.
“Well, now, someone might think you just wanted to be the
last one off the planet."


David smiled back nervously and
didn't say anything. Let him believe what he wanted.


The man shrugged.
“Okay, it's fueled and ready. No other traffic, so you're
cleared."


The trip down to the planet took
four hours. The ice lake actually existed; he landed on its shore. If
nothing else, he would find out one or two more things about this
world. He pulled one of two boxes out of the duffel bag and replaced it
with a survival tent and a couple of days’ worth of rations.
He carried the box down the ladder and set it down outside the
shuttle's airlock. Then he went back up, opened the panel to the ship's
main processor, and disconnected it. That should set some alarms going,
he thought.


On his way out, he touched the
box and hesitated, going over everything again. No, he had to do it
this way. There could be only one way to get him off the planet alive,
and that would be to divert the planetoid. He took a breath, threw the
switch on the timer, climbed down the ladder, picked up his gear, and
headed for the lakeshore.


Ten minutes later, the blast
severed his only way off the planet.


They had not really listened
before; perhaps they would listen now.


Later, on a small rise, he looked
out over the lake. At early evening by local time, the scenery here, in
one of the few places on Martin's surface not covered with ice, was
breathtaking. The steep sides of the caldera were a study in deep red
and black, with glints here and there of volcanic glass. The ground was
cracked and brittle—he would have to watch his step; getting
himself killed too soon would defeat the whole purpose of this mad
exercise.


Would Liz or Mutori pull out the
stops and divert the planetoid? Or would they let him be blown to
smithereens along with the planet? He looked at the still lake,
reflecting the glowing crags of the caldera's rim. Was it really still,
he thought, or was it, too, teaming with life, every bit as deserving
of saving as the damned, all too important, Black Hole Project?


* * * *


Liz was deep in concentration on
an idea that just might work. Array construction robots in orbit about
Canning were hurriedly fabricating a huge net, a thousand kilometers in
radius. A large magsail, meant for a starship, would be attached to the
net, along with several million tons of ballast weighted around the rim
of the net. If everything went right, the whole assembly could be
pushed with planetary transport beams to intercept the planetoid about
a hundred planetary radii from collision with enough momentum to cause
it to graze Martin's atmosphere instead of colliding directly. But it
would be very, very close.


Something was trying to get her
attention. Amongst the numbers and trajectories, a signal light was
flashing.


"Yes?"


"It's Ned. I'm at the door. I
thought I should deliver this news in person."


That didn't sound good.
“Come in."


One look at his face confirmed
that he was the bearer of bad news.


"Liz, have you heard about David?"


She shook her head.


"He's gone to the surface of
Martin, making a human shield out of himself."


"Oh ... crap! I'm sorry, I should
have seen this coming. He's never ... he..."


"I didn't see it coming either."


"I'll need to talk to Cyan."


Ned nodded. “Let me
know if there's anything I can do."


As he left, Liz touched the net. Cyan,
emergency, Cyan, we have a problem, she sent. The lightspeed
delay was maddening.


What, Liz? What is the
matter?


David has gone human
shield on us.


Wait.


Human shield?



He's gone down to
Martin in hopes that we'll divert the beam projector to save his life.



Wait.


You know him better
than any of us, Liz. Can you talk him out of it?


I'll do what I can.
I'll get absolutely nowhere talking on the radio. I'll have to do this
in person.


Wait.


The momentum exchange
mesh—the big net—is almost ready, Cyan
said. Hopefully we can spread the push over the entire area
and hold the major pieces together .
If we use BHP projectors, we can load less ballast
and launch it now, then give it a major push.


No! Keep the project
projectors on the impactor. We can't risk screwing with that. I'll go
down to Martin myself and try to bring David back.


Wait.


Liz, do you think that
is wise? Much could go wrong.


Liz remembered how David had
helped her stand up to DeRoot, how he'd been at her side when things
had seemed darkest, and all the wonderful, sweet moments of lovemaking
they'd shared.


Cyan, I owe him too
much. I have to try. I'd never forgive myself if I didn't.


Wait.


I understand. You will
take several robots, of course, armed with tranquilizer darts; I will
authorize the exception to the Asimovian rules. I know you will try to
get his voluntary cooperation first, but time is short. And Liz, we've
been over David's recent communications. Voice stress analysis, word
patterns, and other things. He doesn't seem to be well.


Chaos! What?



People still occasionally got
brain tumors, Liz knew. They were quickly cured when detected, but they
had to be detected first. Then there was the stuff he was working with;
the quarantine was very good, and the human immune system should be
totally lethal to anything that hadn't evolved ways to counter it. But
there was still a chance. Deep in thought, Liz barely noticed the
lightspeed delay.


We don't know without
doing a scan and taking samples—it could be strictly
psychological, stress induced. But I think it's important to know if
he's been affected by anything in the environment because a layer of
that environment will be plastered all over this planetary system in a
few years as a result of impact debris. At any rate, there may be some
pathology involved; he's not acting rationally. Also, whatever he does,
you should not blame him, or yourself. I know this is hard when it
happens to someone you love, but tragedies happen. If the worst
happens, remember him as he was. Finally, and I am very sorry to say
this, but he may strike out irrationally. Remember that if he does,
it's not him. But still, be very careful. And remember that it is not
always possible to fix everything. If it gets too late, come back.



I will, Cyan. Thank
you.


Could she hunt down David as if
he were a zoo animal out of his cage? Could she leave him to die? Did
she have any choice?


* * * *


David found that he was off the
net. The relays might have been removed or someone might have thought
that denying him access would give them an advantage. That meant they
were going to try to resolve this by force instead of negotiation. His
heart sank; that would cost several hours. No, he thought, they might
work the problem in parallel; even now some way to divert the planetoid
might be in the works, something that could be turned on or off at the
last moment.


Night fell. The planetoid was
less than a day away, near the ecliptic plane, coming posigrade. He
looked to the west and found it easily—it had a huge coma of
gas, like a comet. The nucleus was already a small disk. It would stay
there, fixed among the stars. That was how one could tell if something
was going to hit you—the angles stay the same.


Very well. If they were going to
try to force him off, they would come with robots,
sensors—the whole nine yards. They would succeed, unless he
could somehow anticipate them and strike first. He had dealt with
terrorists back in the Israeli defense force; he was on the other side
now, but he knew the territory. Maybe they would not anticipate that.


To get a surprise, he would have
to make them think he was here but actually be there. He took a
reflective blanket and some line, then climbed up a small lava dome
until he could see the landing site. He built a couple of small towers
with flat volcanic rocks and anchored the top of the reflective blanket
to them. Then he anchored the bottom of it at about forty-five degrees
so it formed a kind of lean-to. He went back down and moved his
campsite until he could see the distorted reflection of the
still-glowing wreck of his shuttle in this jerrybuilt mirror. The radio
in the emergency stores had both infrared and radio frequency bands, as
did the suit. He set it up in sight of the mirror. If this worked, he'd
be able to speak on infrared from his suit, the infrared would reflect
off the mirror to the emergency comm pack, and his voice would come out
on the radio from the campsite.


He took a second box from the
duffel bag and headed for the landing site.


Halfway there he keyed the
infrared channel in his helmet. “Hello, everyone. Liz, Cyan.
You know I am very sorry to cause you so much trouble. You must also
know that this is more important than your inconvenience, or even my
life, if it comes to that. You must do what you can to prevent the
impact. I must do everything I can to make you do that. I have no
choice in this. I hope you understand this. I am sorry."


He heard his little speech on the
radio as he said it; a distracting echo, but it proved his system
worked. Unless they had managed to deploy a very sophisticated
surveillance system on very short notice, they should think he was at
the camp site on the shore of the lake; he'd left a heater on there,
and the radio would be coming from there.


"David, this is Liz. I'm coming
to get you. We've figured out a way to divert the planetoid; a huge
mesh net is on its way from Canning. It will probably work, but if the
planetoid breaks up in the net, some of it may get through. It's too
dangerous to stay on the surface of Martin."


David's heart beat rapidly. There
was hope. Then he thought again. What proof did he have that anything
was actually being done? They'd cut him off the net. She could be
lying. Why not? She would do anything to save her damn project.


"Liz,” he said.
“That sounds very hopeful. Thank you for making the effort,
if it is true. But I must take the risk that it is not true or I give
up all my leverage. Please go back and get me after the impact is
diverted."


"David, you might be dead!"


"I know this. I have thought this
through very carefully. It is my choice."


"David, I am coming to get you.
That is my choice."


He could think of nothing to say
to that. He quickly covered the distance to the landing site and hid
himself in a broken lava tube near the wreck. None too soon; just as he
settled in, he heard the sonic boom of the approaching shuttle, and
soon the glow of its engines lit up the landscape. He watched the
bullet-shaped vehicle's landing gear extend as it set smoothly down,
the hatch side turned mostly toward him.


David agonized. But he would have
to do what he had to do; he had come too far to waver now. If Liz was
lying to him, she had sealed her own fate as well.


As soon as the shuttle landed and
Liz had popped the hatch, he opened his comm line. “Liz, my
camp is on the shore of the lake, about ten minutes walk from here, uh,
I mean from where your shuttle is coming down."


"I see it, David. Please come
meet me at the landing site. We're doing everything we can."


He shook his head automatically,
even though she couldn't see him. “I cannot take that chance.
I am sorry. If you want to talk, come to the camp. We still have
several hours."


Liz didn't answer him. The hatch
swung open and she descended, followed by three black circular robots
hovering on their fans. He could barely see them, but this close he
could hear them.


She strode off toward the camp,
her path lit by a helmet light. The robots, presumably invisible now,
followed. He patted a device in his pocket; he had an answer for those,
but now was not the time to reveal it.


David judged the distance to the
shuttle. He didn't dare use the infrared to talk now; Liz would pick
that up in her helmet and immediately know what he was doing. Would she
suspect? Had she left a guard? The best strategy would be to approach
the shuttle normally. His box with the bomb was a standard sample box
and should be recognized as such.


He waited until she was halfway
to the camp, then got up and walked as calmly as he could to the
shuttle. He opened the standard infrared channel for robotic interface
and positioned his body so the beam would not carry to Liz or his own
radio relay setup, he hoped.


"Hello. I'm David Levi. I have
some samples to go to the lab."


"Mr. Levi. Please do not enter
the shuttle; you are not authorized. I have notified Captain Avonford
of your presence."


"David!” Liz screamed.
“I thought you were at the camp. What are you doing at the
shuttle?"


"I changed my mind,” he
said, using the radio channel from his suit. He took two more steps
closer to the shuttle, reaching the right landing gear. “I
really wanted to see you again, Liz."


He turned away from the shuttle,
triggered the switch and set the sample case down as carefully as he
could. He started running toward Liz, not daring to look back. Five ...
four ... three ... two ... one...


The blast wave almost knocked him
over. Now he looked back and watched the shuttle topple to the ground.
Back to square one, he thought. He turned back toward Liz and stood
motionless, trying to figure out what to say. She would probably be
upset.


A sudden sting in his arm told
him just how upset.


* * * *


Liz had skimmed along the
regolith toward David, wanting to believe him, wanting to get him and
get out of here. But she'd been deceived. Should have had the robots
tranquilize him earlier, she thought. But she'd held back. Maybe there
was an explanation that made sense. Once he was in her arms again,
surely he would listen to reason. He had run toward her; she could see
the light on his helmet bob up and down with each long stride. Surely
they could still sort things out.


The blast took her totally by
surprise, and she watched in horror as the shuttle toppled to the
ground. There was no second explosion, and its navigation lights stayed
on. The port light created a pool of red on the lava and showed the
crumpled side of the vehicle in high relief.


Liz brought herself to a halt. Take
him down, she sent to the hovering robots. Talk about closing
the barn door after the horse escaped.


Liz, Ned. Are you okay?



I'm fine. He got the
shuttle before I got him. Can you get another one down here?


We'll have to try,
won't we? The port manager and I've got it in works, but it looks like
an hour to fuel and check out and four hours—make that four
point three—down to the surface where you are. That's
collision time, I'm afraid.


Her heart skipped a beat and a
knot suddenly tightened in her gut. Chaos, try to shave ten
minutes off that somewhere, will you?


I'll try my best. Do
you want me to tell Cyan?


So it's down to this, Liz
thought. What would Cyan Mutori do? A word from her now, and the full
power of the beam could be thrown against the planetoid, possibly
breaking it up, possibly pushing it away. But that diversion would also
throw the impactor off profile, perhaps irretrievably so. Damn Peal!
There was no margin, none.


Not just yet. See
where you get on the spare shuttle.


Are you sure, Liz?



It could mean the difference
between probably living and probably dying, for both her and David. But
it could also be the difference between carrying out her mission with
certainty and leaving humanity's greatest project to chance. She'd
wanted to be the big fish in the small pond, to have the big decisions.
Well, this was one that would echo through the rest of history.


Yes, I'm sure. Ned, if
it doesn't work out ... It's not your fault. But get that damn shuttle
here!


As soon as we can.
Good luck. Ned out.


Liz looked up at the oncoming
planetoid and its halo of gas, rising high over the eastern horizon. It
would not, if she remembered the simulations correctly, quite reach the
zenith from her location. In the last minutes, it would begin plunging
back down to the horizon. Then a hypersonic detonation wave would jet
out above her, and the blast wave would roll over the horizon at the
local speed of sound, some twenty minutes later.


Human beings had voluntarily gone
to their deaths before, for a big enough cause, but she had not ever
quite thought of herself that way. She'd survived everything so far, on
sheer strength of will. We were out here because of will, she thought.
The shuttle would make it.


Liz, Cyan. What's
going on down there?


Liz sighed. It hadn't taken her
long to find out.


A small delay. He's
tranked now. I'm going after him.


Wait.


You are stranded!



Maybe. Cyan, am I
still in charge? Is it my call? You know what is at stake. This
situation is my responsibility, and I have chosen to keep the project
on profile. On our friendship, please honor that choice.


Wait—this time much
longer than required for just the lightspeed delay.


I understand what is
at stake. If it were my responsibility, I would, I hope, have the
courage to choose as you have. But we will do everything we can short
of affecting the project to get you out of there. The net has been
launched; it should arrive three hours before impact. The planetoid
will still be half as far away as the moon is from Earth. If everything
holds, it should get enough delta-v to just graze Martin's atmosphere.
Roche forces will pull it apart, but the net may hold it together for a
while. We can't tell whether it will be captured or not—too
many uncertainties.


You're giving me some
hope, anyway. Between that and the relief shuttle, I'm going to assume
I'll make it.


Liz had kept walking as she
talked. David's helmet light glowed softly, nearer and nearer.


When she got there, that was all
there was—the helmet light.


Where's David? she
asked the robots.


The one designated
“Alpha” answered. We have a command
authority conflict.


"Chaos!” Liz struggled
to regain her temper.


Cyan, could you reset
the command authority override on my robots? David has pulled another
fast one on me.


Wait, agonizingly long.


Done. Use the prefix
“Sunbeam” if you have any more problems.


Thanks.


To the robots: Sunbeam.
Where's David?


Mr. Levi is proceeding
on foot to the lake. He apparently has a trank antidote.


No kidding! Keep him
in sight. I'm following.


Liz, Cyan. We can
still boost the net a little more.


Chaos, Liz thought. Why couldn't
they just let the decision stand?


No, Cyan. Thank you
but no. The whole thing's chancy and the last thing I'd want is to
screw up the project, and get killed, too.


Wait.


Liz! Judi
Lalande broke the quiet. In one hour, we can no longer
accelerate the net. Martin's moon is getting in the way.


Yes, Judi, Liz here. I
understand. I may end up seeing this explosion first-hand. You know
what? I'm not scared. It's like letting go. Liberating in a way. What
will happen will happen. I accept that. Just get that shuttle here!



Silence. It gave her a momentary
chill. Would they respect her wishes? She tried to contemplate her
humiliation if they did not and the project got screwed up. She smiled
to herself. Risky behavior was nothing new to her, and here it was, the
ultimate. Triumph or die. Or triumph and die. Either way, glory.


As if floating on air, Liz
started running toward David. There was still time to grab him and at
least get away from Martin.


She stopped bouncing and opened a
radio channel to David.


"David. What's going to happen is
going to happen. There's nothing more that anyone can physically do.
The net is on its way; we should be able to see the intercept. It may
work. Meanwhile there's a crewless shuttle on its way to take us off.
It may get here in time even if the net doesn't work. There's no point
in running from me anymore."


"I cannot believe you."


Liz looked up into the sky and
asked for a reticular circle where the net was. It floated in front of
her eyes at infinity, a faint red circle. There, in its center, was a
tiny spider web.


"David, believe your own eyes
then. Look up, in Ursa Major, a little left of Mizar and Alcor, there's
a faint, tiny web."


It grew even as she watched. Liz
touched the net. Forty minutes until impact. Even without additional
boost from the project projectors, the device was traveling at a
hundred and thirty kilometers a second.


Maybe too fast, she realized. She
looked at the projections; ninety percent of the net cords were
predicted to fail on impact. Would the remaining ten percent be enough?
Things would stretch, of course.


David materialized from the dark
into the glow of her helmet light. “You planned it this way,
didn't you! You all did."


Liz didn't bother to answer that.
He was here; that was all that counted. “You're not thinking
clearly. Let's get to the shuttle rendezvous."


David caught up to her and they
both turned toward the dark sky standing side by side. “When?"


"Thirty minutes for the net
impact, about three hours for the main event and the shuttle landing."


Wordlessly, they headed for the
landing field, about three kilometers away.


The net zoomed by overhead,
moving at the apparent rate of a high altitude aircraft or a satellite;
but it was much farther away and moving much faster. As it approached
the planetoid, its angular rate grew less and less; a trick of
perspective, Liz realized. The net now moved almost directly away from
them. It would have been better, she thought, if it could have hit the
planetoid from the side, but this would be almost as good. It only had
to slow it a little, just enough for Martin to move a little farther
from under it.


The net vanished, invisible
against the glowing gas surrounding the planetoid.


It happened slowly. The planetoid
slowly split into two, then three, then five pieces. Some of them
seemed to be drifting off to the right, others not at all.


Liz, Cyan...



I saw, Cyan. It looks
like part of it is still going to hit.


Wait.


Yes. There was a small
delay on the shuttle trajectory to let the net go by. It will be very
close. Be ready to run for it. In the meantime, perhaps you would wish
to settle whatever you need to settle. I've opened the net back up to
David.


She didn't think they would make
it. Thank you, very much, Cyan, for everything. Thank you.


Two hours, forty minutes. A
message to Mom, of course. To Captain Katherine Avonford on
whatever starship she may be flying to wherever. Mom. You've probably
heard what happened off the media. By the time you read this, I will
have become so much interstellar gas flowing out of the Lacaille 9352
system. Perhaps we will run into each other. I'll say something general
about how I feel about this—it's not really bad at all. I've
let go. I'm accepting it, at peace with it, even in a strange way,
looking forward to the experience. I always wanted to be important, to
make a mark, to be remembered. But I'd rather have stayed around for
the party. I forgot how so many of history's legends bought fame with
their lives. Martyrdom isn't worth it. Tell everyone that. Martyrdom
isn't worth it.


And to Hilda. I made a
mess of it, Sis, but I got it done. Enjoy the physics.


And to so many others.


She looked at David, silent,
concentrating on his own good-byes.


They reached the edge of the
landing field.


Five minutes. Death hurtled
toward them. It was huge now, a constellation of comets with a single
coma falling toward the horizon, visibly moving, passing what brightest
stars still shone through its vapors. One by one, they slipped below
the horizon.


Time to impact?



The first contact has
occurred.


A sudden glow lit the horizon.
Then a ghostly curtain began to spread from some point below it, like
an aurora, but a thousand times brighter. Jets of debris and gasses
tangent to the globe of Martin at the impact point moved at tens of
kilometers per second.


Heart in her throat, she sent a
last message to Cyan. I guess this is it. Thanks for trying.


Wait.


Hang in there, Liz.
The shuttle's almost down and it will take several minutes for the
blast wave to reach you. But be ready for five gees flat on your back
in the airlock.


Shuttle on approach,
be prepared to board.


She looked up and the deep blue
of its jets lanced down from the sky. She reached over and grabbed
David.


"Time to go."


"Go yourself. It's hopeless."


"Come on, we've got to try."


While David lingered in awe of
its horrible beauty, Liz grabbed his arm and gave it a tug.


"Come on! Run for the
shuttle!” It settled down fifty meters from them, its hot
exhaust flapping their Martin suits.


She felt David pull her hand
loose. “Go,” he told her. You can't save this
place, you can't save me.” And he pushed her toward the
shuttle. “Just go!"


It was futile, they both knew it.
Regardless, Liz focused. She could not give up completely. How close
could she come to getting away?


Prepare for immediate
lift off as soon as I get in the hatch, she told the shuttle.
Without David's weight, she reached the shuttle as the debris curtain
spread overhead. The trick would be to get between that and the blast
wave.


The ladder hung out of the hatch.
David got up at last, and tried to run toward her.


"Hurry!” she screamed.


He tripped over a small rock and
fell. He picked himself up. A second lost. “I'm going to be
the martyr here, Liz. Get lost!"


A strange orange light flooded
the horizon. She turned. Ah, yes. This was it. She sent what she saw
streaming into the net. Roiling clouds zoomed toward the zenith as if
in a time-lapse video of normal weather. It glowed. Everything glowed.
She felt like she was in an oven.


Air slammed into her and sent her
skyward, the shuttle and David tumbling nearby. She felt surreal.


Hot—very, very hot. Her
visor melted, bowed in, a blowtorch played on her face. Everything went
dark. She took a last breath, a breath of pure fire. She willed herself
to take it deep, so as not to prolong the pain. So I pass
into legend. n


(EDITOR'S NOTE: Other
parts of the Black Hole Project were described in “Kremer's
Limit [July/August 2006] and “Imperfect Gods”
[December 2006]. You can see additional information about the Project
and the people involved in it on the “Science Behind the
Story” section of the Analog website
[www.analogsf.com].)


Copyright (c) 2006 C. Sanford
Lowe & G. David Nordley


[Back to Table of Contents]









THE REFERENCE
LIBRARY by Tom Easton


A Madman Dreams of
Turing Machines, Janna Levin, Knopf, $23.95, 232 pp. (ISBN:
1-4000-4030-2).


Mathematicians in Love,
Rudy Rucker, Tor, $24.95, 364 pp. (ISBN: 0-765-31584-X).


The Android's Dream,
John Scalzi, Tor, $24.95, 396 pp. (ISBN: 0-765-30941-6).


Alphanauts,
J. Brian Clarke, Edge (www.edgewebsite.com), $14.95, 325 pp. (ISBN:
1-894063-14-7).


The Elysium Commission,
L. E. Modesitt, Jr., Tor, $24.95, 336 pp. (ISBN: 0-765-31720-6).


Dadgum Martians Invade
the Lucky Nickel Saloon! Ken Rand, Yard Dog Press, $14.00,
195 pp. (ISBN: 978-1-893687-81-3).


New Dreams for Old,
Mike Resnick, Pyr, $15.00, 419 pp. (ISBN: 1-59102-441-


* * * *


It is a cliche that madness and
creative genius go together. Those who favor it often mention Van Gogh
as a prime example, but creative people in many areas seem to strike
ordinary folks as at least weird and at most dangerously warped,
perhaps mostly because they think unusual thoughts and display a
tendency toward extreme focus on those thoughts, bordering on
obsession. We can see this in artists, poets, writers (including SF
writers), and scientists. We also see it in the efforts of the mad to
justify their madness ("I'm not crazy—I'm a genius!"). Add to
this that people love to gossip about others who are in some way out of
the ordinary, and perhaps you have enough justification for a public
obsession with the madness of creative geniuses.


So why does most of the obsession
in recent years seem to focus on mathematicians? I think of Sylvia
Nasar's A Beautiful Mind, about John Nash, whose
madness was schizophrenia. And now we have Janna Levin's A
Madman Dreams of Turing Machines. Levin is a professor of
physics and astronomy at Barnard College of Columbia University. Her
obsession here—or, to be more fair, the obsession of her
narrator—is with the lives of two men whose ideas have done
an enormous amount to shape the modern world. Alan Turing played a
seminal role in the development of computer science. Kurt Godel
demonstrated that any system of thought (such as mathematics) must
contain truths that cannot be proved from within the system (often
misunderstood as just “truths that cannot be proved"). Both
men are often mentioned as examples of high-achieving autism or
Asperger's Syndrome. Asperger's, marked by social incompetence,
repetitive behaviors, and often high intelligence, is sometimes called
the “geek syndrome."


But Levin does not mention autism
or Asperger's. She—or her narrator—begins by saying
“The unsorted catalogue of biographical facts provides
nothing without stories with their dents and omissions and sometimes
outright lies to create meaning ... Because some truths can never be
proven by adhering to the rules.” A Godelian notion, of
course, and the reader is left to wonder what is truth, what is a lie
in the pages that follow (with a bit of help from the Notes at the
end), beginning with Wittgenstein and the obsessive mathematicians and
logicians of the Vienna Circle, where the extraordinary Godel, social
misfit and food-obsessive, introduced his great insight. Then to
England, where young Turing is being mistreated by his schoolmates and
displaying his own food obsessions ("He likes his food smooth") and his
fixation on a classmate. And on Levin moves, focusing more on the two
men and their madnesses than on their work, building a sense of time
and place, and moving with a sense of inevitability toward their
deaths, Godel by self-starvation, Turing by cyanide (after his trial
for gross indecency or homosexuality).


The tale is quite modern in its
self-referential character and lack of plot external to the
characters’ lives. It is more interesting than many such
novels because Turing and Godel are interesting characters, and Levin
handles them deftly and sympathetically. I found A Madman
Dreams very readable.


But A Madman Dreams
is science fiction only if you include fiction about science and
scientists in the definition. I'm willing to do that, and if you share
that willingness, you should enjoy the book.


* * * *


Rudy Rucker is a mathematician
and a highly creative SF writer. Is he crazy too? After considering A
Beautiful Mind and A Madman Dreams of Turing
Machines, one might think so. Madness is a perfectly natural
state of mind for such fellows, right? But Rucker saves the madness for
his fiction, and indeed Roland Haut, thesis adviser to math grad
students Bela and Paul, is pretty far around the bend. Why, he sees
giant cone shells floating outside his office window! You might wonder
about Bela and Paul too, for their theses involve a theory that permits
prediction of events from such things as the splash of raindrops.
Paul's an orderly fellow, so he writes down his math as neat rows of
symbols. Bela's more artistic, so he envisions the math as teapots,
cakes, fish, and rakes. And when Bela insults Haut on camera, Haut
kicks him out.


Poor Bela. He has a mathemagical
mind whose visions sound like ‘60s dope dreams. He also has a
new girlfriend, Alma, who needs a place to live, moves in, and starts
acting interested in Paul. Of course, Mathematicians in Love
act just as numb as anyone else, so it isn't long before tempers are a
bit short. Fortunately, Bela is brainstorming like mad and finally
proving the great theorem. He and Paul write the paper, add Haut's name
as coauthor, and graduate. Paul moves out and takes Alma with him. Bela
starts having trouble finding a job and no trouble at all finding
trouble. Fortunately he's a musician too, and before long he's famous.
But what he really wants is Alma.


All worlds have politics. Before
long, Bela and Paul are being enlisted in a corporate-political scheme
to use their math to make devices that will help a certain party
(there's a pretty explicit analog here) take supreme power. That's when
they find a way to tickle the device with an irresolvable paradox
(shades of Godel!), open a hyperdimensional tunnel, and flee to another
world where they find ... Giant talking cone shells. Giant talking
cockroaches (sort of). And a jellyfish that creates worlds the way
poets write poems, each one better than the last.


Will the jellyfish create a new
Earth where Bela can have Alma back? Can a world contain more than one
Bela, Paul, or Alma? If not, who dies? Or as so many fairy tales have
asked, what is the price of a wish?


Right on page one, Bela tells the
reader that his tale begins on another Earth and ends on ours. When the
jellyfish comes in, creating worlds in an ever closer approach to
perfection, the reader must smile and perhaps anticipate the tale's
penultimate punch line and wince a bit at the thought that our world,
as messy and imperfect as it is, is the best of all possible worlds.
Yet that thought is not unusual for Rucker. For all the weirdness of
his fiction, he seems an essentially benign fellow, well
pleased—despite the need of sundry groups, governments, and
parties for criticism and satire—by the overall tenor of life
in this world. Yet he is not usually so explicit. His benignity now
comes across as a bit Pollyannaish, though if that's a flaw, it mars
only the last page or two. The rest of the novel is as weird and
wonderful as anything Rucker has ever written.


* * * *


John Scalzi departs from his Old
Man's War novels with The Android's Dream, a fun
tale frankly inspired by Philip K. Dick, but going off in a much more
rational, if still wacky, direction.


Earth, new to interstellar
civilization, has as a chief ally the Nidu, the interstellar equivalent
of a third-world country. At the moment, the two are in the midst of
trade negotiations, but Earth's chief negotiator has a long-standing
grudge against the Nidu, and when someone offers him a way to strike
back, he grabs it. Even if ... Well, the Nidu are caste-ridden and the
high castes use odors to communicate. An Earth faction that wants to
disrupt relations has come up with a gadget that, powered by intestinal
methane and controlled by a wireless link, can emit deadly insults.
It's quite inconspicuous, too, since it is implanted in ... You got it.
It works very well, too. The Nidu negotiator has a stroke and dies. The
human conveniently has a heart attack in his moment of triumph. And the
Nidu are furious.


They're also feeling frustrated.
A coronation is coming up, complete with rites that demand the presence
of a bright blue sheep of the very special “Electric
Android” breed, ownership of whose genome was given by Earth
to the Nidu. Unfortunately, the flocks, both on Nidu and on the human
colony world where the breed was engineered, have been destroyed by a
plague. The Nidu regime is in danger. If Earth's government can come up
with a suitable sheep, then maybe there will not be a devastating war.


Enter Harry Creek, heroic
survivor of a war that amply demonstrated the way the Nidu treat
enemies and even bystanders (it ain't pretty). He's also an ex-cop and
a grand hacker. A friend in the State Department, Ben Javna, hires him
to hunt for the sheep, and he makes rapid progress, quickly learning
that someone is destroying potential targets before he can get to them.
But with the help of a unique AI, he finds Robin Baker, a pet shop
owner whose DNA is 20 percent “Electric Android” (I
won't tell you how; Scalzi does fine). Since the sheep-killers are
right behind him, now the chase is on, with action that fits very well
with what you might expect from the author of Old Man's War
and The Ghost Brigades.


Enter also the Church of the
Evolved Lamb, derived from the desperate poetry of a drunken SF writer
and con artist who thought founding a religion would be a great way to
make money. The religion turned out to have a life of its own. Now it
forms a faction in the tale, as well as a deep and far-reaching
conspiracy. And when Scalzi reveals that any Nidu
clan—anyone, actually—that can come up with an
“Electric Android” sheep during the coronation
ceremony has a chance to supplant the clan currently in power, the
Astute Reader gets a hint of where he's going. All that's left is the
fun part, the details, and the biggest question of all: Will Robin and
Harry ever have a second date?


This is one I stayed up late to
finish reading. Not many make me do that any more.


* * * *


J. Brian Clarke has appeared
often enough in this magazine to be familiar to most of you. Indeed,
his stories “Return of the Alphanauts” (1990) and
“Adoption” (1992) gave rise to the novel at hand, Alphanauts.
Unfortunately, he strikes me as stronger at shorter lengths. Alphanauts
is an episodic tale that, while mildly interesting, breaks no new
ground for experienced SF readers. It is most suitable for young
(middle school) readers.


The tale begins when Earth's
first interstellar explorers return from Alpha Centauri, where they
found a habitable world. While enduring three years of quarantine, they
learn that people who are too long away from Earth have a way of going
berserk. It doesn't seem to have affected them, but when they visit
Earth at last, it does. Have they transferred their internal
“allegiance” to Genser's World? Then they must
return, with others, as colonists. Once there, they soon discover a
colony of aliens and their ships—still occupied by cyborg
intelligences—and empathic “catbird”
symbiots. In due time a ship arrives from Earth a bit ahead of schedule
and proudly announces that it has licked the FTL problem. Then the
signals from Earth stop. Since the colonists have FTL, they return to
find disaster and discover that a ship loaded with would-be dictators
is on its way to Genser's World.


It's not really a reviewer's
place to tell a writer how he or she should have written the story. But
calling a novel only “mildly interesting” is the
sort of thing an author might well find insulting. So what would it
take for me to retract the insult? Characters could be much more fully
developed. Clarke could refrain from short-circuiting or leaping across
(in the gaps between episodes) potential conflicts. Problems could
resist solution more realistically and thereby contribute some dramatic
tension to the tale.


* * * *


In his
“ghost” novels (and elsewhere), L. E. Modesitt,
Jr., has displayed a fondness for heroes with military backgrounds who
work in intelligence, academia, and/or research of some sort. The
pattern holds in The Elysium Commission, which
begins when private researcher and problem-solver Blaine Donne is
approached by a client who wants him “to discover and
ascertain in evidentiary terms the exact relationship between Eloi
Enterprises, Judeon Maraniss, and Elysium."


Donne is a war hero whose current
hobby is being the “knight of shadows,” who
prevents crime in the streets. His world is Devanta, ruled by the
secretive Sorores and nervous about the tendency of the interstellar
ubergovernment to disruptive, cataclysmic intervention when it decides
a local government is too repressive. Eloi Enterprises, run by the
ruthless and violent Eloi brothers, is dedicated to pleasures of the
flesh. Maraniss is an arrogant, unsympathetic, and vindictive city
planner who—the cover blurb reveals this much—has
created a pocket universe containing a utopian city. As the story
develops, the reader learns that he and the Elois are the heart of a
conspiracy that involves interstellar politics, powerful enemies, and a
pathological yearning for vengeance on the Sorores and their society.
But Donne does not know this. He can only search Devanta's databases
for connections, find a secretive research compound, massive energy
use, and a movement of Eloi personnel offworld, be noticed, and survive
violent attacks. He must also work on other cases, discover that his
sister's business partner, Siendra, is both helpful and appealing, and
in the end discover that everything is astonishingly connected, that
the Sorores have a pretty good idea of what is going on and how to
handle it so the ubergovernment doesn't step in, and that Siendra is
much more than she at first appeared.


The finale is a satisfying flurry
of extreme violence and a happy clinch. As usual, Modesitt leaves
behind a very contented reader and a hope that he doesn't plan to leave
Blaine and Siendra alone for too long.


* * * *


Ken Rand tries too hard. He's
sending too many things up at once—westerns, alien invasions,
excessive use of dialect and malapropisms, and more—and while
he can make the reader smile from time to time, the overall effect is
more wearing than amusing.


The opening scene of Dadgum
Martians Invade the Lucky Nickel Saloon! is, of course, said
saloon, located on Second Ave., Laramie, Wyoming Territory. The
saloon's “regulars"—and Rand misses only one
“regularity” joke—are bemoaning the end
of barkeep Mick's (he's Irish, of course) generous credit policies at
the insistence of his affianced, Miss Emma, who resides behind the red
light at Miss Dolly Dubois’ Residence for Refined Ladies.
Journalist Sam Somebody (Clemens, maybe?) is taking notes. And that's
when Casper walks in with a chicken on his head. Not just any chicken,
of course. It has lips instead of a beak (which makes it lisp as well
as replace the “cl” in the typical chicken noise
with “f"), it wants a drink, and it says so using Casper's
vocal cords. You see, when it's asetting on a guy's head, it can work
him like a puppet.


It doesn't take long for the
picture to clarify. The chicken is an escapee from a Martian scout
ship, and the regulars soon decide that if they can sell it to the
circus (in town at the moment, of course), they can solve the credit
problem. They're chasing it around the bar's rafters when Jack arrives
with a dead chicken snaffled from the whorehouse's henhouse, and a
posse of whores, armed with rolling pins and surrounded by a cloud of
lavender-scented pink powder, hot on his tail.


Pretty soon, the barflies are
rescuing the alien pseudochicken from the henhouse at the cathouse and
fleeing into the countryside with the whores whooting and whollering
behind them. Soon rescued by the circus strongman and his mermaid wife,
they wind up in control of the Martian flying saucer and crash the
circus, in the process goosing the elephant into a pachydermatous tizzy.


You get the idea, I'm sure, and
if lowclass over-the-top hyuck-hyucks are your cup of tea, Yard Dog has
more Rand titles too, not to mention such things as The Four
Bubbas of the Apocalypse. Visit www.yarddogpress.com to see.


* * * *


It is something of a cliche to
say that dead writers live again whenever someone rereads one of their
books. It is also a fond hope of living writers, as Mike Resnick says
quite evocatively in “Travels with My Cats,” in
which an author actually manages to return to prod a loner toward
involvement and love. The story is one of twenty to be found in New
Dreams for Old, a collection that amply demonstrates why Mike
has been one of my favorite writers since the 1970s. He has a
remarkably clean style and a huge gift for sheer story at many levels.
He can be light and frothy as in his John Justin Mallory fantasies (two
are here) and deeply reflective about the human condition, as in the
Kirinyaga stories (one of the best, “For I Have Touched the
Sky,” is here). If you aren't familiar with his work, this
collection is an excellent introduction. If you are, his stories tend
to be very rereadable. Buy this one, and enjoy.


I'm not sure that one can say
dead writers also live again when critics discuss their work, but they
certainly do when wives and children and friends publish their memories
in memoirs and biographies. It is thus a pleasure to see that Isaac
Asimov's widow, Janet Jeppson, has been persuaded to write Notes
for a Memoir on Isaac Asimov, Life, and Writing. It's a slim
book, but it is an eloquent reflection on life and love with Asimov and
the importance of imagination, reading, writing, philosophy, humor, and
more in that life and love. There is also a fair amount of material on
Jeppson's own past, which makes the book in part an autobiography. But
though she has published her own science fiction—and even
rounds out the book with seven short stories that attest to a talent
quite strong enough to stand on its own—most who pick up this
book will do so for the connection to her late husband. Yet she too
will live past her lifetime in her work, and that is no bad thing at
all.


Copyright (c) 2006 Tom Easton


[Back to Table of Contents]









BRASS TACKS



Stanley,


I have been an Analog
subscriber since 1976, and my collection goes back to January 1967.


I read the October 2006
editorial and want to start by setting you straight on some items,
because you don't seem to have all the facts.


RFID chips contain only
a unique id for the product. They do not contain price or any other
information. The price is stored in the computer scanning the purchase.
I believe current RFID chips store 128 bytes of info. Tracking all the
people all the time is not possible.


Let me explain number two so
that the masses can understand, because I run into this on so many
wacko boards (which is probably where your source for this originated).


In 1992, I was brought into a
project to consult on sizing a computer for a project by AT&T.
Some sister group in another city wanted to store the entire billing
for the AT&T phone network for a three month rolling store, to
try and do “what if” questioning against. I quickly
did the calculations for them and showed them that the largest computer
of the type that theoretically existed was 2/3
times the size needed to just store the data. I would estimate that the
processor power to load and unload the data and to do the actual
searches on it would be 100 to 1000 times what was available. The
theoretical computer was six times the size of the largest computer of
the type then in existence, and exceeded a hard coded limit in the
hardware to boot. The data for each phone call recorded was to be
smaller than the size of a current RFID chip, by about 3 to 2.


Okay, it is fourteen years later
and computers are bigger and faster. However, at the mainframe level,
they don't grow as fast as at the PC level. And today, AT&T
could probably store the data. But they don't have
enough processor to do the “what if” questions
against it.


Now, let us fast forward to what
you are talking about storing. For every encounter with any item that
has an RFID chip, you are going to store 3/2 the amount AT&T
was going to store. Thousands and thousands of products. And not just
three months of data, years of data would have to
be tracked to be of any use. All of that would have to be searched
together to do any significant searching.


I know, your next thought is to
go to “massively parallel” computers. Well, sorry
to burst that bubble. The computer we were sizing out in 1992 was a
“massively parallel” computer. (Over 1000
processors.)


So, in my professional opinion,
the kind of privacy invasion you are talking about in your article is
tens or more years away, short of some major ground-shaking advance in
computer hardware.


You see DARPA was only
experimenting with the process of collecting limited amounts of data;
they had not stopped to consider the quantity of data they would be
looking at.


To give you some perspective. On
the 4th of July this year, we had a project to just re-organize data in
place (which improves access time). We spent 3.5 hours re-organizing
660 million rows of data. We had a sizable mainframe computer pegged
for that time (running at 100%, just on this task). Now just to read
the data, by the standard calculation, would be just over 1 hour. I
estimate that the data for storing all the RFID would easily exceed 660
trillion rows. A very simple calculation shows that
just reading all the data would take the entire output of a single
mainframe for something like 1,000,000 hours. Certainly not timely
information, as the data would change long before you got a result. And
even the federal government cannot afford 100,000 or more mainframes!
Or more especially the staff to run them!


James Eager


BS Computer Science, MBA


Data Analyst


Database Administrator


* * * *


I hope I have sufficiently
debunked this “theory” enough to prove to you how
foolish this fear is. If you have any questions about how I got to some
of these numbers, please ask, but know that I rounded in favor of your
premise considerably in each case. In actuality, I suspect the numbers
of being orders of magnitude worse for the premise.


* * * *


I find on rereading
the editorial that you're right about one thing—I
inadvertently made it sound as if the price information was stored in
the RFID itself rather than in an external database. That could be done
in the future, if anybody wanted to, but it's more expensive, clunkier,
and there's no good reason to do it—having only ID on the
RFID lets individual stores set prices and change them at will. I knew
better, and apologize for the bad wording.


As for the rest, it
seems to me that you're basing your argument on obsolete data, a too
conservative estimate of how fast things change, and an unrealistically
simplistic assumption about how such searches would be done. I asked
Edward M. Lerner (who's been researching this stuff now)
for his opinion, and he said:


* * * *


"I disagree with Mr. Eager's
second statement. Tracking individuals is possible, and will only
become easier. I'll argue by reasons of (a) growth in computing,
especially since Mr. Eager reasons from a years-earlier study, and (b)
disagreement with an assumption in his analysis.


First, growth. Computers keep
growing exponentially in their power. Individual processors get faster,
demonstrated by the GHz processors now common in PCs (vs. 6 MHz in my
first PC). Processors handle more bits in parallel now, with 64-bit
processing now common (versus 8 and 16 bits in early PCs). We're
starting to see multiple CPUs on a single chip. The number of CPUs in a
supercomputer keeps increasing (to 64K, in 2005, in IBM's Blue Gene/L).
And beyond supercomputing comes grid computing, in which collaborating
organizations harness their computer centers to common goals.


Storage grows rapidly too, and
petabyte (one petabyte = 1015 bytes) databases now exist, for example,
storing Earth observation data. Addressable memory keeps increasing,
too. Those 64-bit processors I mentioned enable 64-bit addressing. 64
bits in an address register can specify any of 264 (1.84 X 1019)
locations.


Consider the Large Hadron
Collider, nearing completion at CERN. Of most interest to Analog
readers, LHC may finally detect the Higgs boson, a missing piece from
the Standard Model of particle physics. The globally distributed LHC
computing grid will store 15 petabytes per year. Physicists will use
the computing grid to sift for evidence of specific short-lived
particles. (Ref. “Old World, New Grid,” IEEE
Spectrum, July 2006 issue.)


Now extrapolate a few years
more...


Next, the too restrictive
assumption: that data searches always involve brute-force searches of
enormous databases. Those who might exploit and abuse the torrents of
RFID data will know to organize the data as they acquire it. Imagine
businesses or transit authorities voluntarily, or under legal mandate,
uploading daily data dumps to a government organization.


During data ingest, the uploaded
time- and place-stamped RFID readouts can be pre-processed. Linking the
data and constructing indices (in geek-speak, metadata) as records are
ingested greatly simplify hunting for any
particular information.


Finally, consider: If a
particular tag (say, the RFID tag that uniquely identifies a specific
tire) is known to be of interest, the ingest process can flag its
appearances on the fly as it enters the processing
center(s)."


* * * *


Analog,


I read “Day of the
RFIDs” by Edward M. Lerner after reading Stanley Schmidt's
editorial on RFID in the October, 2006 issue of Analog.
The story was enjoyable and Mr. Lerner obviously knows more about RFID
than he is telling. While there are concerns with RFID as voiced by
Stanley, I do not think that the events in the story will come about
and, if they do, there are things that a technically inclined
individual can do about it—far beyond what was done in the
story.


There is a current fear about a
backlash from the public among companies thinking about adopting RFID.
This has resulted in legislation in Wisconsin that makes chipping
people illegal and there are other legislative actions, which can be
found on rfidlawblog.com. As the technology is deployed, more
restrictions will be placed on RFID applications.


There are also economic
disincentives. A very large company has required RFIDs on all shipping
pallets and they have found the following problems:


1. Having RFIDs on pallets has
only decreased out of stock rates by only 0.5%.


2. The profit gained by having
RFIDs on pallets, after an investment of over five hundred million
dollars, was only on the order of just above six million dollars, which
is very bad Return On Investment (ROI) for a very large company.


3. Getting read rates for the
RFIDs up into the 90% range is a real challenge in the relatively
controlled area of a stockroom. The rest of the world is even worse.


Considering the size of the
company, which is a multi-billion dollar retailing company, item 1 and
item 2 above make smaller companies think five times before
implementing a similar system. Bean counters can help your cause as
well as hurt it. The current business thinking is to put RFIDs only on
big-ticket items and those items that must be kept in stock, such as
DVDs and CDs during the first two months after release. The information
above can be found on eweek.com.


From a purely technical
standpoint, RFID can be defeated quite easily if you have any technical
skill. They can detected, rewritten so that you're wearing, say, toilet
seats instead of sandals, burnt out (putting them in a microwave is not
necessary if you can take a camera apart and solder), shielded
(metallized plastic from a potato chip bag works as well as aluminum
foil), jammed, and can be used to insert a virus into the reading
system. I can foresee electronic countermeasures spreading on the
personal level if RFID becomes common. It has been pointed out that the
new US passport with the embedded RFID is still a valid travel document
even if the RFID should go bad. All of the above methods are available
for a search on Google. Use of a proxy in the search is optional. Jim
diGriz, we're waiting for you.


Radcliffe Cutshaw


Viola, AR


* * * *


But remember, these
technologies are still quite young!


* * * *


Dear Stan,


I always look forward to your
editorials and, after many years of reading them, I would like to
comment on the current one, “Needle With A Nametag”
in the October 2006 issue.


Although I am retired now, I
have been an industrial control engineer and I believe that I
understand the RFID technology and I have a couple of points to make.


1. RFID tags do not store a lot
of data. They store a single identification number similar to the UPC
bar code number (it may actually be the UPC number—I don't
know) only. The in-store computers can use this number to look up the
all the other information about the item such as description and price.


2. Essentially RFID technology
is the same technology that is used to “microchip”
your pet. The scary thing about this is that the technology
already exists to put one of the things into the body of
every citizen of this country. In fact, it has already been proposed
and is being discussed in the halls of government as I write this.


3. When a supermarket customer
shops at a certain chain exclusively and uses a “loyalty
card,” the amount of information that the chain's computers
can derive from that data is appalling. Just some of the things they
can tell are:


—The number of people
living in your home, their races, sexes, and approximate ages.


—Their eating habits,
good and bad.


—At least the more
common health problems that may afflict them.


—The total income of
your household.


—The number of pets
you have and what kind.


—Your partying habits:
Do you give big or small parties? How often? How wild?


—How many times a year
you have visitors and how many visitors.


These are just some of the
things they can tell. It doesn't take much imagination to think of
others. This gives you just a hint of how much information can be
derived about you from seemingly innocent sources.


Nelson Highley


Charlotte, NC


* * * *


Dear Dr. Schmidt,


I wonder why people, who are so
against government gathering information on citizens are still so
trusting on governmental gun control. After all, an armed population is
the last bastion in the defense against any tendency toward an
increasingly tyrannical government!


Andrejs Baidins,


Wilmington DE


* * * *


Why do you assume
they're the same people?


* * * *


[Back to Table of Contents]









UPCOMING EVENTS
BY Anthony Lewis


12-14 January 2007



ARISIA ‘07 (Boston
area speculative fiction conference) at Hyatt Regency, Cambridge MA.
Writer Guest of Honor: Esther Friesner; Artist Guest of Honor: Hilary
Scott. Registration: $35 until 15 December 2006; $40 at the door. Info:
www.arisia.org; info@arisia.org; Bldg. 600, PMB 322, 1 Kendall Sq.,
Cambridge MA 02139.


* * * *


12-14 January 2007



RUSTYCON 24 (Seattle area SF
conference) at Seatac Holiday Inn, Seattle WA. Guest of Honor: Terry
Bisson; Artist Guest of Honor: Rob Alexander. Registration $40. Info:
www.rustycon.com; PO Box 27075, Seattle WA 98165-1475.


* * * *


19-21 January 2007



CONFUSION (Michigan area SF
conference) At Detroit-Troy Marriott, Detroit MI. Guest of Honor:
Elizabeth Moon; Fan Guest of Honor: Bill Higgins; Science Guest of
Honor: Paul Myers; Music Guest of Honor: Steve Macdonald; TM: Howard
Waldrop. Registration: $30 in advance; $45 at door (checks to AASFA).
Info: www.stilyagi.org/cons/2007; ConFusion, Box 8284, Ann Arbor MI
48107.


* * * *


19-21 January 2007



COSine 2007 (Colorado Springs
area SF conference) Clarion Hotel, Colorado Springs CO. Guest of Honor:
Connie Willis. Registration: $35. Info:
www.firstfridayfandom.org/cosine/.


* * * *


19-21 January 2007



MARSCON (Tidewater Virginia SF
conference) at The Holiday Inn Patriot, Williamsburg VA. Info:
www.marscon.net; info@marscon.net; Marscon, 4618 Olde Stone Way,
Chesapeake VA 23321.


* * * *


8-11 February 2007



CAPRICON XXVII: A CELEBRATION OF
HIGH FANTASY (Fantasy conference) at Sheraton Chicago Northwest,
Arlington Heights IL. Guest of Honor: Lois McMaster Bujold; Artist
Guest of Honor: Erin McKee; Fan Guest of Honor: Cat Faber.
Registration: $70 at door. Info: capricon.org/capricon27;
info@capricon.org.


* * * *


16-18 February 2007



BOSKONE 44 (New England SF
conference) at Westin Waterfront, Boston MA. Guest of Honor: David
Gerrold; Official Artist: Gary A. Lippincott. Special Guest: Br. Guy
Consolmagno, S.J.; Featured Filkers: Lee and Barry Gold. Registration:
$44 to 16 January 2007, more at the door. Info: www.nesfa.org/boskone;
b44info@boskone.org; Box 809, Framingham MA 01701; fax: (617) 776-3243.





Wyszukiwarka

Podobne podstrony:
Magazine Analog Science Fiction and Fact 2005 Issue 03 March (v1 0) [txt]
Magazine Analog Science Fiction And Fact 2006 Issue 12 December (v1 0) [html]
Magazine Analog Science Fiction and Fact 2004 Issue 12 December (v1 0) [txt]
Magazine Analog Science Fiction and Fact 2004 Issue 11 November (v1 0) [txt]
Magazine Analog Science Fiction and Fact 2004 Issue 09 September (v1 0) [txt]
Magazine Analog Science Fiction and Fact 2003 Issue 10 October (v1 0) [txt]
Magazine Analog Science Fiction and Fact 2006 Issue 11 November (v1 0)
Magazine Analog Science Fiction and Fact 2004 Issue 10 October (v1 0) [txt]
Magazine Analog Science Fiction and Fact 2004
Magazine Analog Science Fiction and Fact 2005
Magazine Analog Science Fiction and Fact 2006
Magazine Asimov s Science Fiction 2007 Issue 02 February (v1 0) [html]
Magazine Asimov s Science Fiction 2003 Issue 03 March (v1 0) [txt]
Magazine Asimov s Science Fiction 2005 Issue 03 March (v1 0) [txt]
Magazine Asimov s Science Fiction 2004 Issue 03 March (v1 0) [txt]
Magazine Asimov s Science Fiction 2004 Issue 12 December (v1 0) [txt]
Magazine Asimov s Science Fiction 2003 Issue 09 September (v1 0) [txt]
Magazine Asimov s Science Fiction 2004 Issue 07 July (v1 0) [txt]
Magazine Asimov s Science Fiction 2003 Issue 10 October (v1 0) [txt]

więcej podobnych podstron